Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n bind_v heaven_n loose_v 6,489 5 10.6824 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A14350 The common places of the most famous and renowmed diuine Doctor Peter Martyr diuided into foure principall parts: with a large addition of manie theologicall and necessarie discourses, some neuer extant before. Translated and partlie gathered by Anthonie Marten, one of the sewers of hir Maiesties most honourable chamber.; Loci communes. English Vermigli, Pietro Martire, 1499-1562.; Simmler, Josias, 1530-1576.; Marten, Anthony, d. 1597. 1583 (1583) STC 24669; ESTC S117880 3,788,596 1,858

There are 26 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

force_n as_o contrition_n and_o repentance_n be_v defer_v touch_v the_o sin_n commit_v and_o when_o repentance_n be_v perform_v then_o also_o let_v a_o end_n of_o the_o punishment_n of_o excommunication_n be_v appoint_v for_o which_o cause_n christ_n be_v demand_v of_o peter_n how_o oftentimes_o a_o man_n shall_v forgive_v they_o that_o offend_v 21._o ibid._n 21._o whether_o seven_o time_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v much_o answer_v even_o so_o often_o as_o they_o shall_v return_v again_o to_o better_a life_n for_o that_o be_v awoint_v when_o he_o say_v seventie_o time_n seven_o wherefore_o they_o which_o by_o repentance_n return_v to_o the_o church_n must_v evermore_o be_v admit_v and_o lest_o peradventure_o so_o often_o separation_n and_o receive_v reiterated_a by_o the_o ministry_n of_o man_n against_o one_o and_o the_o same_o man_n shall_v seem_v to_o be_v of_o small_a importance_n and_o repute_v for_o sport_n and_o mockery_n as_o a_o thing_n proceed_v from_o the_o will_n of_o man_n he_o add_v that_o he_o give_v they_o the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n church_n the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o power_n that_o whatsoever_o she_o shall_v bind_v or_o loose_v upon_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v establish_v in_o heaven_n and_o this_o do_v the_o church_n understand_v in_o the_o same_o sort_n as_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n write_v it_o by_o this_o article_n therefore_o we_o believe_v that_o such_o divine_a authority_n be_v commit_v unto_o the_o church_n that_o it_o may_v absolve_v and_o set_v at_o liberty_n the_o person_n excommunicate_a which_o repent_v they_o of_o their_o sin_n commit_v and_o may_v reconcile_v they_o to_o herself_o whereby_o they_o may_v be_v restore_v unto_o that_o place_n of_o a_o heal_v body_n whereof_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n which_o absolution_n be_v perform_v with_o public_a vow_n and_o prayer_n in_o the_o church_n no_o doubt_n but_o the_o church_n forgive_v they_o their_o sin_n commit_v wherefore_o after_o the_o grant_n of_o this_o authority_n of_o the_o key_n 20._o matt._n 18_o 19_o and_o 20._o christ_n not_o in_o vain_a add_v whatsoever_o you_o ask_v in_o my_o name_n it_o shall_v be_v give_v unto_o you_o and_o wheresoever_o two_o or_o three_o shall_v be_v gather_v together_o in_o my_o name_n i_o be_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o whereby_o it_o be_v gather_v that_o the_o church_n be_v never_o present_a either_o to_o excommunicate_v or_o to_o reconcile_v they_o that_o be_v excommunicate_v but_o that_o christ_n himself_o also_o be_v present_a 8_o 2._o cor._n 2_o 7_o 8_o wherefore_o paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o second_o epistle_n write_v to_o the_o church_n that_o forgive_a the_o fault_n of_o that_o sinner_n of_o who_o he_o have_v make_v mention_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n they_o shall_v confirm_v charity_n towards_o he_o in_o renew_v with_o he_o their_o old_a friendship_n behold_v how_o we_o contemn_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n but_o we_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v in_o the_o will_n and_o authority_n of_o one_o we_o confess_v this_o power_n therefore_o to_o be_v in_o the_o earth_n among_o the_o godly_a but_o even_o as_o the_o multitude_n of_o beléever_n gather_v together_o in_o christ_n have_v only_o the_o right_n of_o excommunication_n so_o have_v they_o also_o of_o reconcile_a and_o admit_v and_o that_o which_o be_v so_o perform_v by_o they_o we_o believe_v also_o to_o be_v do_v and_o confirm_v in_o heaven_n howbeit_o note_n that_o in_o this_o three_o mean_n be_v contain_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o public_a sin_n only_o and_o as_o concern_v the_o two_o former_a mean_n the_o church_n have_v belong_v unto_o it_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o all_o sin_n in_o general_n here_o only_o that_o absolution_n take_v place_n which_o appertain_v to_o public_a crime_n the_o which_o through_o evil_a example_n have_v offend_v and_o do_v harm_n unto_o they_o to_o who_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o have_v come_v wherefore_o with_o all_o the_o hart_n and_o voice_n let_v we_o give_v thanks_o unto_o god_n who_o have_v grant_v unto_o we_o so_o great_a a_o benefit_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o have_v lay_v up_o great_a for_o we_o in_o heaven_n as_o afterward_o we_o shall_v see_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n ¶_o look_v more_o hereof_o in_o the_o three_o part_n 47_o how_o these_o article_n shall_v be_v knit_v together_o life_n after_o remission_n of_o sin_n follow_v life_n by_o a_o more_o fit_a method_n i_o can_v perceive_v sin_n as_o it_o be_v know_v have_v be_v the_o only_a and_o whole_a cause_n of_o man_n death_n and_o that_o we_o have_v remission_n of_o sin_n through_o christ_n it_o be_v show_v a_o little_a before_o now_o then_o remain_v this_o one_o thing_n to_o wit_n that_o by_o he_o we_o shall_v be_v deliver_v from_o death_n and_o release_v from_o the_o tyranny_n thereof_o so_o soon_o as_o ever_o we_o have_v access_n unto_o christ_n by_o faith_n since_o then_o shall_v perish_v in_o it_o the_o continual_a jurisdiction_n which_o it_o obtain_v against_o us._n for_o see_v the_o natural_a power_n hereof_o be_v such_o as_o what_o it_o have_v once_o season_v upon_o it_o firm_o hold_v therefore_o the_o philosopher_n write_v that_o it_o must_v not_o be_v grant_v that_o from_o such_o a_o privation_n man_n can_v return_v to_o their_o ancient_a habit_n in_o which_o matter_n certeinlie_o they_o be_v not_o deceive_v if_o thou_o shall_v but_o consider_v the_o power_n of_o nature_n but_o we_o which_o be_v endue_v with_o faith_n do_v so_o taste_v of_o death_n as_o we_o know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o end_n and_o limit_v appoint_v to_o the_o work_n thereof_o we_o be_v confirm_v through_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n himself_o 39_o john_n 6_o 39_o who_o in_o the_o sixth_o of_o john_n say_v that_o he_o will_v loose_v none_o of_o they_o which_o his_o father_n have_v give_v he_o but_o will_v raise_v they_o up_o at_o the_o latter_a day_n but_o if_o so_o be_v thou_o object_n that_o he_o will_v raise_v up_o not_o only_o they_o that_o be_v godly_a but_o also_o the_o unbeléever_n and_o shall_v therefore_o the_o faith_n in_o christ_n as_o touch_v the_o resurrection_n profit_v any_o thing_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o confidence_n in_o christ_n shall_v nothing_o at_o all_o profit_n unto_o the_o mere_a and_o absolute_a resurrection_n see_v that_o degree_n both_o the_o godly_a and_o the_o wicked_a shall_v obtain_v but_o the_o resurrection_n unto_o felicity_n unto_o life_n eternal_a and_o unto_o heavenly_a blessedness_n be_v only_o grant_v un-them_a which_o by_o faith_n be_v unite_v unto_o christ_n howbeit_o i_o think_v not_o meet_v to_o pass_v over_o this_o to_o wit_n that_o whereas_o the_o wicked_a shall_v rise_v again_o they_o obtain_v not_o that_o by_o the_o power_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n but_o by_o christ_n for_o see_v we_o confess_v that_o by_o the_o death_n of_o that_o one_o first_o man_n we_o be_v all_o make_v subject_a unto_o death_n it_o be_v reason_n also_o we_o shall_v grant_v that_o how_o many_o soever_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o this_o second_o life_n shall_v also_o obtain_v the_o same_o by_o that_o one_o man_n christ_n who_o first_o be_v raise_v up_o wherefore_o the_o wicked_a whether_o they_o will_v or_o no_o shall_v feel_v in_o themselves_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n but_o that_o which_o these_o shall_v obtain_v to_o their_o great_a harm_n just_a man_n shall_v receive_v to_o their_o great_a benefit_n this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n when_o he_o say_v as_o by_o one_o man_n come_v death_n 21._o 1._o co._n 15_o 21._o so_o by_o one_o man_n come_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o as_o by_o adam_n all_o man_n die_v so_o by_o christ_n all_o shall_v be_v make_v alive_a but_o every_o one_o in_o his_o own_o order_n the_o first_o fruit_n be_v christ_n than_o they_o which_o be_v of_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o last_o and_o most_o unhappy_a state_n shall_v they_o be_v which_o be_v stranger_n from_o christ_n and_o as_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o difference_n in_o the_o state_n &_o condition_n so_o shall_v there_o be_v also_o in_o the_o place_n for_o the_o saint_n then_o raise_v up_o 17._o 1._o thes_n 4_o 16_o and_o 17._o shall_v together_o with_o the_o godly_a which_o then_o perhaps_o shall_v remain_v alive_a be_v catch_v up_o to_o meet_v with_o that_o high_a king_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o air_n who_o undoubted_o as_o we_o have_v already_o confess_v shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a as_o we_o have_v expresselie_o show_v in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n wherefore_o christ_n will_v show_v forth_o his_o power_n general_o towards_o all_o as_o well_o good_a as_o bad_a not_o only_o in_o the_o judgement_n itself_o but_o in_o the_o resurrection_n also_o he_o therefore_o be_v the_o first_o that_o have_v
the_o good_a as_o in_o the_o evil_a part_n for_o even_o great_a offender_n be_v call_v anathemata_fw-la or_o accuse_v 3._o rom._n 9_o 3._o and_o in_o this_o sense_n paul_n will_v have_v be_v accurse_v from_o christ_n for_o his_o brethren_n sake_n among_o the_o hebrew_n it_o be_v call_v cherem_n that_o be_v perdition_n prohibition_n or_o a_o thing_n prohibit_v and_o it_o may_v be_v also_o define_v by_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v teach_v of_o the_o apostle_n excommunication_n a_o definition_n of_o excommunication_n after_o this_o manner_n excommunication_n be_v the_o cast_v out_o of_o a_o godless_a man_n from_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o faithful_a by_o the_o judgement_n of_o they_o which_o be_v chief_a and_o the_o whole_a church_n consent_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o christ_n and_o rule_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o the_o salvation_n both_o of_o he_o that_o be_v cast_v out_o and_o of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n treatise_n a_o order_n of_o the_o treatise_n now_o let_v we_o see_v how_o necessary_a this_o punishment_n be_v secondlie_o what_o thing_n ought_v to_o go_v before_o afterward_o who_o be_v to_o be_v excommunicate_v further_o from_o whence_o he_o shall_v be_v cast_v whither_o he_o shall_v be_v cast_v by_o what_o degree_n by_o who_o when_o why_o and_o by_o what_o motion_n or_o inspiration_n and_o what_o we_o shall_v at_o the_o length_n do_v with_o he_o that_o be_v excommunicate_a 17_o how_o necessary_a a_o thing_n excommunication_n be_v mat._n 18._o 17_o 3_o by_o the_o gospel_n we_o easy_o know_v how_o necessary_a this_o aught_o to_o be_v account_v in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o 18._o of_o matthew_n when_o christ_n have_v teach_v as_o concern_v brotherlie_a correction_n he_o add_v but_o and_o if_o he_o shall_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v unto_o thou_o as_o a_o ethnic_a and_o publican_n 18_o ibid._n ver_fw-la 18_o again_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v bind_v upon_o the_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v also_o in_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o you_o lose_v upon_o the_o earth_n shall_v also_o be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n wherefore_o see_v it_o be_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n as_o touch_v all_o the_o part_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o church_n &_o credit_n every_o where_o to_o be_v give_v unto_o it_o so_o as_o they_o be_v to_o be_v woonder_v at_o which_o will_v profess_v the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o do_v exclude_v this_o particle_n we_o read_v in_o the_o 13._o of_o deuteronomie_n 6._o verse_n 5._o jer._n 51._o 6._o take_v away_o the_o evil_a from_o among_o you_o and_o in_o jeremie_n it_o be_v write_v concern_v babylon_n fly_v you_o from_o the_o midst_n of_o she_o 11._o esa_n 52._o 11._o moreover_o the_o israelite_n be_v forbid_v to_o touch_v unpure_a thing_n and_o if_o they_o have_v perhaps_o touch_v those_o thing_n they_o become_v so_o unclean_a as_o they_o be_v sever_v from_o the_o company_n of_o other_o 46_o levi._n 13._o 46_o the_o leper_n be_v banish_v from_o the_o campe._n and_o the_o lord_n expel_v out_o of_o the_o garden_n of_o pleasure_n 23._o gen._n 3._o 23._o the_o first_o parent_n when_o they_o have_v sin_v 14._o gen._n 4._o 14._o cain_n also_o after_o the_o kill_n of_o his_o brother_n go_v as_o a_o runagate_n from_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o parent_n final_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o testimony_n extant_a 14_o 1._o cor._n 5._o 3._o 2._o thes_n 3._o 14_o that_o which_o we_o have_v out_o of_o paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o and_o else_o where_o aught_o to_o be_v sufficient_a also_o john_n in_o the_o second_o epistle_n be_v irenaeus_n 2._o joh._n ver_fw-la 10._o the_o second_o epistle_n of_o john_n who_o it_o be_v the_o which_o irenaeus_n in_o his_o first_o book_n confirm_v to_o be_v the_o apostle_n although_o some_o think_v the_o same_o to_o be_v the_o epistle_n of_o one_o john_n a_o priest_n say_v if_o any_o man_n come_v and_o bring_v not_o this_o doctrine_n he_o receive_v you_o not_o into_o your_o house_n neither_o say_v you_o unto_o he_o god_n speed_n and_o do_v not_o you_o communicate_v with_o evil_a work_n in_o like_a manner_n do_v the_o apostle_n seem_v to_o have_v write_v unto_o the_o ephesian_n 11._o ephe._n 5._o 11._o have_v no_o fellowship_n with_o the_o unfruitful_a work_n of_o darkness_n 4_o before_o excommunication_n 15._o correction_n go_v before_o excommunication_n mat._n 10._o 15._o go_v brotherlie_a correction_n for_o christ_n say_v if_o thy_o brother_n shall_v have_v sin_v against_o thou_o neither_o be_v he_o to_o be_v think_v that_o he_o sin_v not_o against_o we_o which_o sin_v against_o god_n see_v we_o be_v his_o child_n &_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n yea_o very_o the_o saint_n be_v so_o prepare_v as_o they_o easy_o neglect_v that_o which_o be_v commit_v against_o themselves_o and_o soon_o forgive_v their_o own_o injury_n except_o so_o much_o as_o they_o perceive_v they_o to_o redound_v against_o god_n be_v what_o manner_n of_o correction_n ought_v to_o be_v but_o and_o if_o the_o sin_n be_v common_a and_o know_v to_o all_o man_n shall_v it_o have_v need_n of_o brotherly_a correction_n no_o very_o let_v it_o be_v bring_v and_o make_v manifest_a unto_o the_o church_n but_o it_o shall_v be_v needful_a that_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o sinner_n be_v search_v out_o whether_o he_o have_v mind_v to_o repent_v and_o return_v into_o the_o way_n this_o be_v purpose_v he_o which_o sin_v open_o must_v be_v exhort_v and_o admonish_v whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o in_o all_o sin_n aswell_o secret_a as_o public_a there_o be_v need_n of_o brotherlie_a correction_n the_o which_o behoove_v not_o to_o be_v do_v soft_o and_o slacklie_o but_o very_o earnest_o must_v be_v lay_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o sinner_n the_o weight_n of_o his_o transgression_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n kindle_v and_o stir_v up_o against_o he_o the_o punishment_n that_o remain_v for_o he_o final_o the_o offence_n whereby_o he_o have_v hurt_v the_o church_n but_o let_v the_o rebuke_n be_v gentle_a as_o proceed_v from_o a_o friendly_a mind_n otherwise_o if_o he_o shall_v think_v thou_o to_o be_v his_o enemy_n thou_o shall_v rebuke_v he_o without_o any_o fruit_n this_o unto_o the_o galathian_o be_v commend_v 1._o gal._n 6._o 1._o you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a rebuke_n your_o brother_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o gentleness_n excommunication_n must_v not_o be_v rash_a let_v space_n be_v give_v to_o the_o sinner_n to_o think_v with_o himself_o that_o he_o may_v the_o easely_o repent_v a_o physician_n do_v gentle_o handle_v sore_n he_o do_v not_o straightwaie_o prepare_v a_o iron_n &_o fire_n and_o all_o way_n and_o mean_n must_v be_v attempt_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a without_o impair_n the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o retain_v he_o that_o have_v sin_v in_o the_o church_n before_o that_o excommunication_n be_v use_v if_o he_o which_o be_v fall_v give_v place_n to_o admonition_n &_o promise_v faithful_o that_o he_o will_v change_v his_o life_n and_o with_o tear_n and_o confession_n of_o sin_n do_v testify_v a_o repentance_n and_o sorrow_n of_o mind_n and_o do_v take_v away_o the_o offence_n and_o occasion_n of_o sin_n there_o let_v admonition_n cease_v for_o now_o the_o brother_n be_v win_v unto_o christ_n but_o if_o he_o shall_v despise_v to_o hear_v be_v warn_v twice_o or_o thrice_o before_o witness_n let_v he_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n of_o who_o also_o he_o shall_v be_v admonish_v but_o if_o he_o shall_v make_v light_n of_o they_o let_v the_o elder_n refer_v the_o matter_n unto_o the_o people_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o apostle_n unless_o he_o shall_v first_o repent_v let_v he_o with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v excommunicate_v these_o thing_n ought_v to_o go_v before_o this_o judgement_n excommunicate_v who_o be_v to_o be_v excommunicate_v 5_o now_o remain_v to_o see_v who_o he_o be_v that_o must_v be_v excommunicate_v he_o must_v be_v as_o paul_n teach_v among_o the_o number_n of_o the_o brethren_n 11_o 1._o cor._n 5._o 11_o who_o although_o he_o confess_v christ_n in_o word_n yet_o in_o deed_n as_o it_o be_v write_v unto_o titus_n deni_v he_o augustine_n tit._n 1._o 16._o augustine_n neither_o be_v the_o exposition_n of_o augustine_n allow_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v the_o party_n name_v to_o be_v excommunicate_a shall_v be_v refer_v to_o a_o adulterer_n a_o drunkard_n and_o to_o other_o great_a crime_n which_o follow_v after_o for_o sin_n also_o which_o be_v not_o so_o public_a and_o know_v unto_o all_o man_n when_o they_o shall_v be_v stir_v up_o through_o brotherlie_a correction_n public_a how_o private_a sin_n become_v public_a be_v by_o accuse_v to_o the_o church_n make_v public_a also_o they_o that_o be_v infect_v with_o ill_a doctrine_n be_v excommunicate_v as_o
say_v that_o we_o must_v not_o cast_v away_o hope_v of_o they_o that_o be_v onlive_v but_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o no_o man_n must_v be_v punish_v with_o a_o curse_n it_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o saying_n of_o other_o father_n &_o counsel_n which_o curse_v arrius_n manicheus_fw-la and_o many_o heretic_n further_o it_o seem_v to_o agree_v but_o little_a with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n see_v it_o be_v say_v unto_o the_o galathian_o 8._o gal._n 1._o 8._o if_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v preach_v any_o other_o gospel_n than_o we_o have_v do_v let_v he_o be_v accurse_v in_o the_o synod_n of_o nice_a there_o seem_v also_o some_o degreée_n to_o be_v appoint_v in_o the_o church_n hearer_n in_o the_o synod_n of_o nice_a hearer_n in_o the_o first_o place_n be_v herer_n because_o they_o be_v suffer_v to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o holy_a preach_v wherefore_o none_o be_v utterlie_o drive_v away_o unless_o there_o be_v some_o open_a derider_n &_o contemner_n there_o be_v also_o man_n that_o prostrate_v themselves_o prostrate_v man_n prostrate_v who_o desire_v pardon_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n for_o their_o sin_n commit_v there_o be_v also_o suppliant_n reckon_v suppliant_n suppliant_n who_o not_o withstand_v they_o be_v drive_v from_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o when_o the_o faithful_a pray_v they_o be_v suffer_v to_o be_v present_a unto_o which_o degree_n it_o seem_v that_o the_o abstinent_n do_v pertain_v final_o they_o be_v reckon_v which_o communicate_v in_o the_o sacrament_n with_o the_o whole_a church_n excommunicant_o excommunicant_o among_o these_o degree_n it_o be_v account_v the_o small_a to_o be_v drive_v from_o the_o eucharist_n for_o a_o time_n more_o gréevous_a to_o be_v put_v apart_o from_o the_o company_n of_o they_o that_o pray_v but_o most_o gréevous_a of_o all_o to_o be_v remoove_v from_o they_o that_o lie_v prostrate_a but_o as_o touch_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a many_o thought_n that_o these_o article_n be_v counterfeit_a and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v reckon_v for_o the_o lawful_a decree_n of_o that_o synod_n see_v they_o be_v almost_o no_o where_n observe_v yet_o out_o of_o cyprian_a we_o manifest_o gather_v death_n to_o man_n fall_v into_o idolatry_n no_o peace_n give_v but_o at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n that_o there_o be_v some_o degree_n unto_o they_o which_o be_v fall_v into_o idolatry_n as_o he_o say_v there_o be_v give_v no_o peace_n by_o the_o church_n unless_o it_o be_v about_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n but_o unto_o adulterer_n it_o be_v grant_v after_o a_o long_a repentance_n be_v adulterer_n libellates_n what_o they_o be_v but_o unto_o the_o libellatiste_n for_o so_o be_v they_o call_v which_o for_o money_n redeem_v themselves_o in_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n pardon_n be_v somewhat_o easy_o grant_v so_o as_o out_o of_o the_o father_n be_v easy_o gather_v these_o degree_n which_o nevertheless_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n excommunication_n who_o shall_v use_v the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n 8_o now_o be_v we_o to_o entreat_v who_o they_o be_v which_o ought_v to_o exercise_v excommunication_n separation_n from_o god_n and_o from_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n the_o which_o as_o we_o say_v happen_v through_o infidelity_n and_o other_o sin_n can_v be_v lay_v upon_o we_o by_o any_o creature_n we_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o god_n 2._o esa_n 59_o 2._o wherefore_o esaie_n say_v sin_n have_v make_v a_o separation_n between_o i_o and_o you_o 39_o rom._n 8._o 35._o &_o 39_o and_o paul_n say_v that_o he_o certain_o know_v that_o no_o creature_n can_v pluck_v he_o away_o from_o that_o love_n wherewith_o god_n &_o christ_n love_v they_o but_o excommunication_n which_o be_v a_o token_n of_o this_o inward_a profess_v inward_a apostasy_n be_v a_o fall_v away_o from_o he_o that_o we_o profess_v apostasy_n in_o deed_n not_o a_o certain_a and_o necessary_a token_n yet_o a_o great_a one_o and_o great_o to_o be_v fear_v must_v be_v inflict_v by_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n god_n excommunication_n be_v no_o certain_a token_n of_o the_o separation_n from_o god_n and_o therefore_o i_o have_v say_v that_o it_o be_v no_o certain_a and_o necessary_a token_n of_o the_o separation_n from_o god_n and_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n because_o it_o may_v sometime_o be_v that_o a_o good_a and_o innocent_a man_n may_v be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o corrupt_a judgement_n of_o the_o ruler_n in_o the_o church_n as_o we_o have_v know_v it_o to_o be_v do_v more_o than_o once_o in_o the_o counsel_n and_o among_o the_o father_n which_o be_v otherwise_o account_v holy_a wherefore_o by_o excommunication_n we_o be_v not_o proper_o say_v to_o be_v separate_v from_o god_n but_o be_v show_v and_o discern_v to_o be_v separate_v similitude_n a_o similitude_n as_o in_o the_o old_a law_n a_o priest_n when_o he_o judge_v any_o leper_n do_v not_o infect_v he_o with_o leprosy_n but_o pronounce_v he_o to_o be_v already_o infect_v 18_o mat._n 16._o 18_o neither_o be_v it_o against_o this_o sense_n that_o the_o church_n be_v say_v to_o bind_v &_o loose_v because_o this_o judgement_n when_o it_o concur_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n church_n how_o god_n work_v together_o with_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a and_o see_v god_n work_v together_o with_o they_o the_o separation_n which_o have_v already_o happen_v to_o the_o poor_a wretch_n be_v become_v more_o gréevous_a but_o now_o this_o only_a we_o say_v that_o in_o excommunication_n it_o perpetuallie_o happen_v that_o apostasy_n and_o fall_v away_o from_o god_n go_v before_o the_o same_o and_o so_o god_n work_v together_o with_o this_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n when_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n it_o decré_v that_o he_o may_v send_v scourge_n and_o unclean_a spirit_n for_o to_o vex_v they_o that_o be_v excommunicate_a ambrose_n ambrose_n we_o read_v of_o ambrose_n that_o the_o scribe_n of_o stellico_n when_o as_o he_o have_v excommunicate_v he_o begin_v to_o be_v gréevouslie_o vex_v with_o a_o ill_a spirit_n and_o these_o thing_n do_v god_n to_o the_o intent_n he_o may_v declare_v that_o he_o confirm_v that_o in_o heaven_n which_o in_o earth_n shall_v be_v justly_o bind_v 9_o but_o that_o we_o may_v right_o understand_v who_o ought_v to_o be_v excommunicate_a it_o be_v needful_a to_o discuss_v in_o what_o sort_n the_o society_n of_o the_o church_n be_v it_o be_v not_o simple_a of_o what_o manner_n of_o society_n the_o church_n be_v of_o but_o it_o be_v compound_v of_o one_o alone_a of_o many_o good_a governor_n and_o of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o people_n for_o from_o it_o must_v be_v remoove_v pernicious_a kind_n of_o common_a weal_n i_o mean_v tyranny_n the_o government_n of_o a_o few_o 28._o how_o it_o be_v a_o monarchy_n act._n 20._o 28._o and_o the_o lordship_n of_o corrupt_a people_n if_o thou_o respect_v christ_n it_o shall_v be_v call_v a_o monarchy_n for_o he_o be_v our_o king_n who_o with_o his_o own_o blood_n have_v purchase_v the_o church_n unto_o himself_o he_o be_v now_o go_v into_o heaven_n yet_o do_v he_o govern_v this_o kingdom_n of_o he_o indeed_o not_o with_o visible_a presence_n but_o by_o the_o spirit_n and_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 11._o how_o it_o be_v a_o aristocracy_n 1._o co._n 12._o 28_o ephe._n 4._o 11._o and_o there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n which_o do_v execute_v the_o office_n for_o he_o bishop_n elder_n doctor_n and_o other_o bear_v rule_n in_o respect_n of_o who_o it_o may_v justly_o be_v call_v a_o government_n of_o many_o for_o they_o which_o be_v prefer_v to_o the_o government_n of_o church_n only_o because_o of_o the_o excellent_a gift_n of_o god_n as_o touch_v doctrine_n and_o pureness_n of_o life_n must_v be_v promote_v unto_o these_o degree_n these_o office_n be_v not_o commit_v unto_o they_o according_a to_o the_o estimation_n of_o riches_n and_o revenue_n not_o for_o favour_n beauty_n or_o nobility_n sake_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o merit_n and_o virtue_n but_o if_o it_o be_v otherwise_o it_o be_v do_v against_o the_o rule_n but_o because_o in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v matter_n of_o very_a great_a weight_n &_o importance_n democracy_n how_o it_o be_v a_o democracy_n refer_v unto_o the_o people_n 2._o acts._n 1._o 15._o acts._n 6._o 2._o as_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o it_o have_v a_o consideration_n of_o politic_a government_n but_o of_o the_o most_o weight_n be_v account_v excommunication_n absolution_n choose_v of_o minister_n and_o such_o like_a so_o as_o it_o be_v conclude_v weal_n no_o man_n can_v be_v excommunicate_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n the_o roman_a common_a weal_n that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v excommunicate_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n on_o this_o
but_o a_o madness_n to_o rejoice_v in_o tribulation_n the_o disciple_n rejoice_v because_o they_o see_v the_o lord_n for_o if_o we_o behold_v the_o world_n or_o our_o own_o self_n there_o be_v no_o where_o any_o matter_n of_o rejoice_v nay_o rather_o they_o minister_v tear_n unto_o us._n wherefore_o if_o we_o will_v rejoice_v we_o have_v need_n to_o behold_v christ_n there_o shall_v we_o be_v glad_a but_o when_o we_o ourselves_o be_v at_o quiet_a and_o restore_v it_o be_v needful_a that_o we_o communicate_v with_o other_o the_o good_a which_o we_o have_v receive_v wherefore_o christ_n say_v as_o my_o father_n have_v send_v i_o 21._o john_n 20._o verse_n 21._o so_o send_v i_o you_o christ_n come_v not_o for_o himself_o but_o he_o come_v to_o save_v other_o even_o so_o must_v we_o also_o seek_v the_o salvation_n of_o other_o and_o that_o this_o may_v be_v profitable_o do_v christ_n give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o breathe_v not_o that_o the_o breath_n be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n whereby_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v signify_v there_o be_v a_o metaphor_n in_o the_o word_n key_n for_o even_o as_o some_o thing_n be_v shut_v up_o and_o open_v with_o key_n so_o in_o sin_n the_o mind_n be_v otherwhile_o shut_v and_o detain_v and_o otherwhile_o loose_v certain_o we_o be_v not_o otherway_v dispatch_v of_o our_o sin_n than_o by_o knowledge_n through_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n we_o be_v bind_v in_o sin_n when_o we_o be_v leave_v in_o unbelief_n and_o obstinacy_n and_o that_o the_o matter_n may_v be_v well_o understand_v we_o must_v consider_v that_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n be_v here_o teach_v by_o john_n which_o be_v do_v by_o matthew_n and_o mark_v 15_o mat._n 28._o 19_o mat._n 16._o 15_o when_o it_o be_v say_v go_v and_o preach_v you_o unto_o every_o creature_n for_o he_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v baptise_a shall_v be_v save_v he_o that_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v but_o john_n speak_v more_o full_o and_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v give_v for_o by_o he_o be_v understand_v the_o scripture_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v preach_v and_o when_o it_o be_v preach_v it_o be_v by_o the_o same_o holy_a ghost_n beléeve_v of_o the_o hearer_n therefore_o he_o add_v who_o sin_n you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v etc._n etc._n when_o luke_n have_v speak_v the_o self_n same_o thing_n at_o the_o end_n of_o his_o gospel_n he_o say_v that_o christ_n open_v their_o understanding_n 45._o luk._n 24._o 45._o that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o scripture_n which_o be_v do_v by_o this_o breathe_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o they_o this_o be_v to_o consecrate_v minister_n &_o bishop_n not_o with_o a_o bishop_n mitre_n a_o crosier_n and_o unction_n etc._n etc._n wherefore_o the_o key_n be_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n understand_v one_o be_v of_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o other_o be_v of_o beléeve_v when_o it_o be_v hear_v the_o one_o without_o the_o other_o do_v not_o open_a nor_o yet_o release_v sin_n the_o pope_n minister_n think_v that_o to_o they_o be_v give_v by_o god_n the_o authority_n of_o lose_v and_o bind_v who_o they_o will_v with_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o that_o key_n be_v in_o very_a deed_n nothing_o else_o but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n communicate_v no_o more_o to_o the_o priest_n than_o to_o other_o and_o unto_o all_o christian_n and_o this_o word_n of_o god_n be_v inspire_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o be_v partly_o preach_v and_o partly_o beléeve_v and_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o sin_n be_v forgive_v but_o they_o be_v retain_v when_o man_n be_v unbeléeving_a and_o be_v leave_v in_o their_o incredulity_n and_o then_o god_n bind_v they_o in_o heaven_n for_o it_o shall_v be_v more_o easy_a for_o sodom_n than_o for_o that_o people_n 24._o mat._n 10._o 15_o &_o 11._o 24._o etc._n etc._n but_o they_o say_v if_o it_o be_v so_o than_o loose_v than_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n bind_v and_o loose_v we_o neither_o bind_v nor_o loose_v but_o god_n by_o his_o word_n howbeit_o the_o action_n of_o god_n be_v many_o time_n by_o his_o goodness_n communicate_v with_o man_n for_o the_o elect_n be_v say_v to_o give_v sight_n to_o the_o blind_a to_o cure_v the_o lame_a to_o raise_v up_o they_o that_o he_o dead_a whereas_o these_o thing_n be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n so_o they_o be_v say_v to_o bind_v and_o loose_v in_o respect_n that_o they_o use_v the_o instrument_n of_o god_n wherewith_o he_o himself_o lose_v and_o bind_v when_o the_o key_n be_v promise_v unto_o peter_n they_o be_v not_o give_v he_o but_o if_o they_o have_v be_v give_v he_o he_o alone_o shall_v not_o have_v have_v they_o but_o with_o he_o all_o the_o other_o apostle_n under_o who_o person_n he_o answer_v 16._o mat._n 16._o 16._o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n for_o he_o speak_v this_o in_o the_o person_n of_o other_o as_o before_o in_o the_o 6._o of_o john_n when_o he_o say_v to_o who_o shall_v we_o go_v 68_o verse_n 68_o thou_o have_v the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n for_o we_o know_v that_o thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n etc._n etc._n where_o thou_o see_v that_o he_o in_o the_o plural_a number_n speak_v for_o they_o all_o neither_o do_v he_o attribute_v this_o unto_o himself_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v above_o the_o rest_n nay_o rather_o in_o his_o first_o epistle_n the_o 5._o chapter_n he_o himself_o be_v a_o elder_a 5._o verse_n 5._o exhort_v the_o elder_n he_o himself_o as_o say_v jerom_n differ_v not_o from_o a_o elder_a and_o of_o the_o same_o mind_n be_v chryso_v upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n well_o then_o there_o the_o key_n be_v promise_v but_o where_o be_v they_o give_v some_o say_v that_o they_o be_v then_o give_v when_o it_o be_v say_v unto_o peter_n 32._o luk._n 23._o 32._o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o peter_n that_o thy_o faith_n may_v not_o fail_v thou_o and_o that_o thou_o be_v once_o convert_v may_v confirm_v thy_o brethren_n howbeit_o this_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o comfort_n peter_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o despair_v after_o sin_n and_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o be_v restore_v to_o his_o former_a degree_n here_o be_v nothing_o of_o the_o key_n but_o and_o if_o they_o will_v urge_v the_o word_n of_o confirm_v then_o will_v they_o judge_v as_o we_o do_v for_o neither_o peter_n nor_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n confirm_v the_o brethren_n but_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n wherefore_o the_o key_n shall_v be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n other_o say_v that_o then_o the_o key_n be_v give_v to_o peter_n when_o he_o be_v thrice_o demand_v whether_o he_o love_v more_o than_o the_o rest_n and_o it_o be_v answer_v he_o feed_v my_o lamb_n but_o augustine_n and_o cyrill_n write_v that_o these_o word_n be_v therefore_o speak_v that_o by_o thrice_o confess_v he_o may_v make_v amends_n for_o the_o blemish_n which_o he_o have_v for_o the_o thrice_o deny_v but_o of_o the_o key_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v howbeit_o if_o we_o shall_v grant_v they_o that_o the_o key_n in_o this_o place_n be_v give_v 15._o joh._n 21._o 15._o what_o shall_v they_o have_v more_o than_o that_o which_o we_o grant_v they_o shall_v consist_v in_o feed_v but_o this_o be_v do_v as_o we_o have_v say_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n wherefore_o let_v they_o understand_v it_o as_o they_o will_v the_o key_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o the_o soul_n be_v not_o feed_v any_o other_o way_n but_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n indeed_o there_o be_v also_o a_o key_n as_o concern_v excommunication_n and_o reconciliation_n yet_o those_o key_n be_v not_o general_a but_o concern_v only_o heinous_a sin_n which_o he_o now_o public_a and_o convict_v and_o the_o key_n be_v general_a thing_n as_o touch_v all_o man_n which_o be_v to_o be_v bring_v unto_o the_o church_n who_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v forgive_v or_o retain_v but_o yet_o must_v we_o understand_v that_o that_o key_n also_o of_o excommunicate_v or_o reconcile_n be_v not_o any_o other_o than_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o when_o a_o open_a sinner_n be_v either_o exclude_v or_o reconcile_v this_o be_v not_o do_v but_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o that_o which_o way_n soever_o thou_o turn_v thou_o that_o which_o we_o teach_v do_v always_o follow_v the_o key_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o such_o great_a cause_n for_o the_o massemaker_n to_o glory_n for_o there_o be_v two_o key_n the_o one_o be_v of_o teach_v and_o the_o other_o of_o beléeve_v they_o use_v their_o key_n but_o that_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o open_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n unless_o that_o he_o which_o hear_v
be_v continual_o preserve_v after_o one_o order_n as_o though_o they_o may_v in_o no_o wise_n be_v change_v where_o nevertheless_o it_o may_v be_v and_o daily_a come_v to_o pass_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o in_o old_a time_n be_v good_a do_v utter_o degenerate_v the_o church_n of_o the_o hebrews_n in_o the_o old_a time_n be_v very_o acceptable_a unto_o god_n 2_o 1._o king_n 9_o 2_o 11._o mat._n 21._o 13._o jer._n 7._o 11._o so_o long_o as_o right_a religion_n flourish_v therein_o but_o when_o that_o be_v afterward_o pollute_v that_o which_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n be_v turn_v into_o a_o den_n of_o theene_n which_o they_o not_o consider_v trust_v unto_o it_o more_o than_o be_v meet_v always_o cry_v on_o this_o wise_a the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n 4._o verse_n 4._o etc._n etc._n as_o though_o their_o common_a wealth_n shall_v not_o perish_v so_o long_o as_o the_o temple_n remain_v even_o so_o our_o adversary_n think_v so_o that_o the_o name_n of_o the_o bishop_n church_n and_o the_o outward_a pomp_n and_o show_n of_o the_o ministry_n be_v at_o rome_n there_o the_o church_n be_v when_o as_o they_o have_v subvert_v all_o thing_n which_o make_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v a_o grievous_a crime_n to_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n but_o when_o that_o be_v call_v the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o who_o will_v disallow_v the_o depart_v from_o thence_o the_o hebrews_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n boast_v that_o they_o have_v the_o church_n but_o see_v they_o refuse_v the_o gospel_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o apostle_n upon_o just_a cause_n depart_v from_o they_o and_o this_o do_v ezechiel_n beforehand_o declare_v in_o the_o ten_o chapter_n 18._o verse_n 18._o when_o he_o see_v the_o majesty_n of_o god_n lift_v itself_o up_o into_o heaven_n and_o forsake_v the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n beside_o this_o josephus_n testify_v that_o when_o the_o roman_a war_n be_v at_o hand_n there_o be_v voice_n hear_v from_o the_o secret_a place_n of_o the_o oracle_n who_o oftentimes_o repete_v let_v we_o depart_v from_o hence_o and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n bewray_v that_o the_o christian_a church_n which_o be_v at_o jerusalem_n be_v translate_v to_o pella_n when_o the_o war_n be_v at_o hand_n again_o into_o chaldea_n the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n remoove_v under_o nabuchadnazar_a so_o as_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o these_o man_n shall_v assure_v themselves_o that_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v unchangeable_a 39_o but_o some_o of_o they_o say_v that_o among_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n change_n be_v easy_o make_v but_o after_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o the_o seat_n of_o peter_n be_v settle_v in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v that_o these_o alteration_n will_v at_o any_o time_n happen_v but_o let_v they_o tell_v we_o what_o assurance_n they_o have_v above_o other_o church_n place_n whether_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v never_o change_v his_o place_n if_o they_o go_v about_o open_o to_o persuade_v that_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n alexandria_n and_o antioch_n be_v subvert_v wherefore_o be_v they_o exempt_v from_o the_o like_a mutation_n assure_o paul_n do_v not_o so_o think_v for_o unto_o the_o roman_n speak_v unto_o the_o nation_n convert_v unto_o god_n he_o say_v 21._o ro._n 11._o 21._o that_o they_o shall_v diligent_o take_v heed_n to_o themselves_o because_o god_n who_o spare_v not_o the_o natural_a branch_n will_v in_o like_a manner_n not_o spare_v they_o wherefore_o they_o err_v as_o far_o as_o heaven_n be_v wide_a if_o they_o affirm_v that_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v so_o bind_v to_o the_o seat_n of_o rome_n as_o they_o will_v never_o go_v from_o thence_o so_o long_o they_o tarry_v there_o as_o that_o church_n do_v lean_a unto_o the_o true_a foundation_n but_o when_o it_o begin_v to_o be_v found_v upon_o the_o sand_n of_o man_n tradition_n it_o be_v subvert_v neither_o can_v it_o be_v say_v that_o it_o be_v of_o god_n see_v christ_n prescribe_v a_o rule_n that_o they_o be_v of_o god_n which_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 47._o rom._n 8._o 47._o and_o afterward_o of_o they_o which_o boast_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o church_n he_o bold_o pronounce_v you_o hear_v not_o those_o thing_n because_o you_o be_v not_o of_o god_n and_o what_o congregation_n can_v there_o be_v of_o the_o church_n if_o it_o be_v not_o of_o god_n and_o the_o cause_n why_o the_o romanist_n admit_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v for_o that_o they_o perceive_v it_o to_o be_v wonderful_o against_o they_o furthermore_o what_o church_n i_o pray_v you_o can_v that_o b●_n which_o judge_v not_o itself_o to_o stand_v safe_o unless_o that_o christ_n and_o his_o word_n be_v drive_v away_o he_o that_o beléeve_v not_o those_o thing_n let_v he_o more_o narrow_o behold_v their_o deal_n they_o have_v transform_v the_o church_n into_o a_o court_n or_o place_n of_o judgement_n for_o so_o they_o speak_v among_o themselves_o and_o these_o word_n they_o use_v every_o where_n and_o moreover_o a_o far_o great_a labour_n be_v use_v in_o the_o stile_n of_o chancery_n which_o consist_v altogether_o of_o fraud_n and_o guile_n than_o in_o any_o study_n of_o divine_a thing_n gregory_n in_o the_o register_n the_o 4._o book_n in_o the_o epistle_n 251_o and_o 55_o write_v of_o the_o holy_a ministry_n faith_n that_o see_v it_o be_v fall_v within_o it_o can_v long_o stand_v without_o this_o do_v he_o judge_v 800._o year_n past_a and_o shall_v we_o think_v that_o that_o church_n have_v true_o stand_v hitherto_o malachi_n in_o the_o second_o chapter_n say_v 8._o verse_n 8._o because_o you_o have_v go_v out_o of_o the_o way_n and_o have_v cause_v many_o to_o fall_v therefore_o have_v i_o make_v you_o to_o be_v despise_v wherefore_o in_o go_v from_o the_o romanist_n we_o have_v not_o forsake_v the_o church_n but_o have_v flee_v from_o a_o intolerable_a yoke_n and_o from_o the_o conspiracy_n against_o the_o evangelicall_a doctrine_n it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o these_o man_n will_v persuade_v christian_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v permit_v they_o by_o god_n without_o any_o limit_n yea_o continual_o to_o waste_v the_o vineyard_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o yield_v no_o fruit_n for_o it_o but_o to_o murder_v the_o servant_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v send_v unto_o they_o to_o demand_v any_o fruit_n undoubted_o they_o be_v much_o more_o foolish_a than_o the_o hebrews_n which_o answer_v christ_n when_o he_o have_v put_v forth_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o vineyard_n he_o will_v cruel_o destroy_v those_o wicked_a man_n 41_o mat._n 21._o 41_o and_o will_v let_v out_o his_o vineyearde_n unto_o other_o husbandman_n why_o do_v not_o these_o man_n remember_v that_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o very_a truth_n itself_o unto_o the_o jew_n 43_o ibid._n ve_fw-la 43_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o you_o see_v then_o they_o be_v in_o the_o same_o fault_n see_v the_o cause_n be_v all_o one_o see_v he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n i_o see_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v doubt_v but_o that_o the_o power_n dignity_n and_o true_a nature_n of_o the_o church_n be_v take_v away_o from_o they_o but_o to_o disproove_v this_o our_o departure_n they_o bring_v a_o place_n out_o of_o the_o epistle_n of_o jude_n which_o blame_v the_o wicked_a because_o then_o have_v separate_v themselves_o but_o the_o answer_n be_v ready_a expound_v a_o place_n of_o jude_n expound_v because_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v ascribe_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o pope_n god_n have_v sever_v we_o from_o he_o as_o it_o have_v be_v show_v by_o his_o oracle_n and_o precept_n 19_o acts._n 4._o 19_o neither_o can_v we_o forget_v the_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o we_o must_v rather_o obey_v god_n than_o man_n even_o as_o when_o there_o be_v a_o just_a divorce_n for_o adultery_n 6._o matt._n 19_o 6._o man_n divide_v not_o they_o who_o god_n couple_v together_o but_o god_n himself_o by_o his_o word_n and_o law_n sever_v man_n and_o wife_n in_o that_o case_n 40_o also_o they_o enforce_v against_o we_o as_o they_o think_v a_o very_a strong_a reason_n perish_v whether_o all_o that_o hitherto_o have_v live_v under_o the_o pope_n have_v perish_v in_o demand_v whether_o all_o man_n that_o be_v before_o we_o and_o have_v live_v under_o the_o obedience_n of_o rome_n be_v perish_v you_o say_v they_o be_v n●we_a man_n and_o late_o spring_v up_o see_v you_o be_v scarce_o to_o be_v see_v 30._o year_n past_a or_o thereabouts_o but_o there_o be_v above_o 900._o year_n pass_v since_o boniface_n the_o 3_o who_o you_o make_v author_n of_o the_o popedom_n it_o be_v most_o absurd_a to_o be_v say_v
and_o grant_v their_o body_n and_o outward_a part_n unto_o the_o devil_n 38_o forsomuch_o as_o by_o the_o part_n of_o the_o distinction_n before_o put_v we_o have_v speak_v sufficient_o as_o concern_v the_o dwell_n together_o of_o private_a man_n with_o infidel_n now_o remain_v to_o treat_v of_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n power_n a_o distinction_n of_o power_n and_o they_o be_v either_o principal_a as_o they_o which_o depend_v of_o no_o other_o nor_o have_v superior_a power_n above_o they_o or_o else_o they_o be_v inferior_a officer_n which_o lawful_o &_o of_o right_a be_v subject_a unto_o superior_a potentate_n as_o it_o be_v by_o fealty_n or_o for_o because_o they_o be_v their_o deputy_n or_o minister_n that_o be_v official_o or_o vicar_n as_o common_o they_o be_v call_v let_v we_o first_o therefore_o speak_v of_o such_o as_o be_v absolute_a and_o mere_a high_a power_n search_v whether_o they_o in_o their_o dominion_n may_v suffer_v the_o faithful_a to_o be_v conversant_a with_o infidel_n i_o think_v it_o be_v lawful_a so_o that_o there_o be_v certain_a condition_n or_o caution_n put_v for_o when_o as_o the_o roman_a empire_n receive_v christianity_n every_o one_o which_o live_v under_o the_o same_o empire_n do_v not_o straitwaie_o believe_v who_o yet_o be_v suffer_v to_o live_v and_o dwell_v peaceable_o yea_o in_o the_o time_n of_o ambrose_n symmachus_n who_o be_v a_o stranger_n from_o christ_n be_v so_o hardy_a to_o crave_v of_o the_o emperor_n that_o the_o rite_n of_o the_o ethnik_n may_v be_v restore_v which_o be_v not_o grant_v unto_o he_o and_o now_o when_o as_o kingdom_n and_o dominion_n have_v admit_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n there_o be_v still_o many_o suffer_v which_o be_v woonderfullie_o affect_v towards_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o wickedness_n because_o they_o can_v without_o great_a perturbation_n of_o the_o state_n be_v separate_v from_o they_o which_o be_v of_o the_o gospel_n so_o that_o the_o prince_n be_v force_v to_o suffer_v such_o conversation_n neither_o be_v that_o to_o be_v ascribe_v a_o fault_n in_o they_o if_o that_o they_o depart_v not_o from_o these_o just_a caution_n the_o first_o whereof_o be_v caution_n the_o first_o caution_n that_o they_o constrain_v not_o the_o faithful_a to_o any_o ungodlie_a worshipping_n for_o than_o shall_v they_o not_o execute_v the_o office_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n but_o rather_o of_o the_o devil_n and_o of_o antichrist_n they_o shall_v be_v a_o terror_n to_o good_a work_n and_o not_o unto_o evil_n neither_o shall_v they_o set_v forward_o the_o work_n of_o god_n but_o the_o tyranny_n of_o satan_n caution_n the_o second_o caution_n secondlie_o let_v they_o beware_v that_o they_o permit_v not_o unto_o the_o infidel_n wicked_a rite_n and_o ungodlie_a ceremony_n in_o their_o dominion_n of_o this_o crime_n be_v solomon_n guilty_a not_o that_o he_o compel_v the_o jew_n to_o worship_n idol_n 7_o 1._o kin._n 11_o 7_o but_o because_o to_o his_o wife_n and_o concubine_n which_o be_v stranger_n he_o permit_v temple_n in_o jury_n wherein_o they_o may_v worship_v astaroth_n and_o chamos_n and_o other_o strange_a god_n but_o how_o gréevouslie_o god_n be_v offend_v with_o he_o the_o holy_a history_n declare_v he_o be_v justly_o punish_v by_o the_o law_n of_o like_a for_o like_v 11._o ibidem_fw-la 11._o that_o even_o as_o he_o have_v make_v division_n of_o the_o service_n of_o god_n give_v part_n thereof_o unto_o god_n and_o part_n unto_o idol_n so_o be_v his_o kingdom_n divide_v whereof_o a_o part_n be_v grant_v unto_o his_o son_n and_o a_o part_n be_v give_v to_o jeroboam_fw-la the_o son_n of_o nebat_fw-la and_o his_o fault_n spread_v abroad_o unto_o his_o posterity_n for_o achas_n manasses_n and_o many_o other_o ungodlie_a king_n have_v wicked_a &_o detestable_a worshipping_n at_o jerusalem_n for_o the_o which_o they_o be_v by_o the_o prophet_n gréevouslie_o and_o sharp_o reproove_v and_o undoubted_o a_o magistrate_n can_v but_o be_v blame_v when_o he_o worship_v idolatry_n see_v he_o bear_v the_o sword_n to_o revenge_v wicked_a act_n wherefore_o we_o must_v determine_v idolatry_n a_o magistrate_n must_v punish_v idolatry_n either_o that_o idolatry_n be_v no_o sin_n or_o else_o that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v punish_v by_o the_o magistrate_n as_o well_o as_o other_o sin_n be_v 39_o augustine_n many_o time_n do_v very_o well_o entreat_v of_o that_o place_n of_o david_n 10._o augustine_n psal_n 2_o 10._o be_v wise_a now_o therefore_o o_o you_o king_n be_v learned_a you_o that_o be_v judge_n of_o the_o earth_n serve_v the_o lord_n in_o fear_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v meet_v say_v he_o that_o even_o king_n do_v serve_v the_o lord_n neither_o speak_v david_n of_o they_o god_n how_o and_o in_o what_o respect_n king_n ought_v to_o serve_v god_n in_o that_o respect_n that_o they_o be_v man_n for_o so_o be_v they_o bind_v as_o well_o as_o other_o to_o observe_v common_a law_n in_o that_o therefore_o that_o they_o be_v king_n sure_o they_o be_v warn_v to_o use_v the_o power_n and_o sword_n give_v they_o by_o god_n to_o defend_v the_o verity_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o to_o repress_v the_o ungodlie_a that_o the_o catholic_a truth_n and_o church_n of_o god_n so_o far_o as_o their_o dominion_n extend_v be_v not_o assail_v so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o prince_n to_o grant_v unpure_a worshipping_n unto_o the_o ungodlie_a nay_o rather_o it_o be_v their_o part_n special_o to_o be_v earnest_a in_o set_v forth_o of_o sound_a doctrine_n ceremony_n and_o rite_n which_o agree_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o to_o speak_v thereof_o by_o the_o way_n i_o think_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v too_o much_o contend_v that_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n may_v be_v all_o alike_o and_o observe_v every_o where_o after_o one_o manner_n but_o this_o must_v be_v regard_v that_o they_o be_v not_o repugnant_a unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o that_o they_o approach_v thereunto_o as_o nigh_o as_o be_v possible_a that_o they_o tend_v as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v to_o edifieng_v and_o to_o the_o promote_a of_o decency_n and_o order_n communion_n of_o stand_v sit_v or_o kneel_v at_o the_o communion_n for_o otherwise_o it_o make_v no_o matter_n whether_o we_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n stand_v or_o sit_v or_o kneel_v so_o that_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v keep_v and_o occasion_n of_o superstition_n be_v cut_v off_o neither_o be_v it_o any_o matter_n when_o the_o brethren_n be_v communicate_v whether_o one_o certain_a place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v recite_v or_o whether_o psalm_n and_o thanksgiving_n be_v song_n of_o the_o people_n yea_o and_o i_o think_v that_o this_o variety_n of_o rite_n rite_n how_o profit_n be_v have_v by_o the_o variety_n of_o rite_n do_v not_o a_o little_a further_o to_o the_o obtain_n of_o a_o true_a opinion_n concern_v ceremony_n namely_o that_o all_o man_n may_v understand_v that_o those_o ceremony_n which_o be_v not_o set_v forth_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o may_v be_v change_v for_o edification_n sake_n as_o time_n shall_v serve_v and_o augustine_n to_o januarius_n and_o cassulanus_fw-la be_v of_o this_o opinion_n augustine_n augustine_n the_o three_o condition_n or_o caution_n that_o must_v be_v regard_v be_v caution_n the_o three_o caution_n that_o prince_n take_v heed_n that_o those_o infidel_n who_o they_o suffer_v in_o their_o dominion_n be_v continual_o with_o diligence_n instruct_v and_o not_o neglect_v they_o as_o common_o the_o manner_n be_v in_o thing_n pertain_v unto_o godliness_n otherwise_o we_o be_v not_o to_o look_v that_o the_o patience_n wherewith_o the_o prince_n suffer_v they_o can_v set_v forth_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n if_o they_o may_v be_v suffer_v continual_o without_o teach_v to_o abide_v in_o their_o ungodlie_a opinion_n for_o in_o process_n of_o time_n they_o become_v not_o the_o better_a on_o whit_n but_o a_o great_a deal_n the_o worse_o caution_n the_o four_o caution_n furthermore_o prince_n must_v beware_v that_o those_o sort_n infect_v not_o the_o people_n commit_v to_o their_o charge_n with_o the_o corruption_n of_o infidelity_n and_o error_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o mutual_a conversation_n between_o they_o caution_n the_o five_o caution_n and_o final_o when_o they_o be_v well_o instruct_v and_o teach_v they_o must_v compel_v they_o to_o the_o sound_n and_o pure_a worship_v which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v appoint_v for_o the_o magistrate_n may_v not_o suffer_v his_o subject_n to_o live_v without_o the_o exercise_n of_o godliness_n government_n the_o end_n of_o civil_a government_n for_o the_o end_n of_o civil_a government_n be_v that_o the_o citizen_n shall_v live_v virtuous_o and_o happy_o and_o who_o see_v not_o that_o godliness_n and_o worship_v of_o god_n be_v of_o all_o other_o virtue_n the_o
the_o husband_n be_v the_o head_n of_o his_o wife_n because_o in_o virtue_n and_o wisdom_n he_o ought_v to_o excel_v she_o and_o although_o this_o do_v not_o always_o come_v to_o pass_v yet_o reason_n will_v that_o for_o the_o most_o part_n it_o shall_v so_o be_v 23._o ephes_n 5_o 23._o but_o paul_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n command_v that_o man_n shall_v love_v their_o wife_n as_o christ_n love_v the_o church_n wife_n man_n must_v love_v their_o wife_n but_o christ_n so_o love_v the_o church_n as_o he_o both_o purge_v it_o and_o make_v it_o safe_a even_o as_o in_o the_o government_n of_o excellent_a man_n they_o which_o bear_v rule_v do_v not_o only_o respect_v their_o own_o profit_n but_o the_o public_a weal_n and_o the_o head_n do_v not_o exercise_v tyranny_n against_o the_o member_n even_o so_o between_o man_n and_o wife_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v no_o need_n of_o violence_n which_o i_o speak_v not_o to_o this_o end_n as_o though_o man_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o reform_v and_o constrain_v their_o wife_n that_o offend_v for_o christ_n do_v sometime_o both_o chasten_v and_o correct_v his_o church_n but_o this_o he_o do_v to_o the_o intent_n he_o may_v make_v it_o the_o better_a so_o if_o man_n correct_v &_o chasten_v their_o wife_n at_o any_o time_n correct_v after_o what_o sort_n wife_n must_v be_v correct_v it_o be_v meet_v for_o they_o to_o do_v it_o with_o that_o charity_n wherewith_o christ_n amend_v his_o church_n but_o this_o they_o do_v not_o who_o in_o a_o rage_n and_o only_o to_o satisfy_v their_o own_o desire_n do_v miserable_o handle_v they_o and_o god_n doubtless_o by_o the_o hand_n and_o industry_n of_o man_n because_o of_o their_o estate_n &_o natural_a dignity_n bestow_v many_o thing_n upon_o woman_n but_o if_o it_o be_v otherwise_o do_v at_o any_o time_n that_o man_n be_v either_o teach_v to_o be_v better_o or_o else_o obtain_v any_o gift_n of_o god_n by_o mean_n of_o woman_n that_o happen_v but_o seldom_o and_o it_o be_v nothing_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o order_n appoint_v by_o god_n 5_o furthermore_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n what_o be_v due_a to_o every_o one_o 15_o 1._o kin._n 17_o 15_o unless_o the_o widow_n of_o sarepta_n have_v certeinlie_o know_v it_o to_o be_v the_o special_a will_n of_o god_n she_o shall_v not_o have_v do_v this_o namely_o to_o defraud_v herself_o and_o her_o son_n to_o the_o intent_n she_o may_v sustain_v a_o man_n be_v a_o stranger_n neither_o ought_v prophet_n or_o man_n of_o god_n by_o the_o accustom_a rule_n of_o piety_n to_o require_v this_o of_o any_o man_n that_o they_o shall_v maintain_v they_o without_o take_v care_n for_o themselves_o and_o their_o child_n for_o even_o the_o apostle_n to_o timothy_n do_v plain_o pronounce_v 8._o 1._o tim._n 5_o 8._o that_o they_o which_o have_v not_o a_o care_n of_o their_o own_o and_o especial_o of_o their_o family_n have_v deny_v the_o faith_n and_o be_v become_v worse_o than_o infidel_n and_o therefore_o he_o will_v that_o widow_n shall_v be_v maintain_v by_o they_o of_o their_o own_o kindred_n but_o when_o the_o widow_n be_v now_o certify_v by_o the_o special_a will_n of_o god_n it_o be_v not_o for_o she_o to_o have_v respect_n what_o be_v command_v by_o the_o law_n in_o general_a neither_o may_v that_o take_v place_n which_o be_v make_v a_o common_a proverb_n charity_n first_o begin_v at_o a_o man_n himself_o howbeit_o one_o we_o must_v have_v respect_n what_o be_v due_a to_o every_o one_o as_o touch_v the_o common_a course_n that_o we_o may_v perfect_o discern_v to_o who_o we_o be_v more_o or_o less_o bind_v and_o not_o to_o be_v deceive_v we_o must_v consider_v that_o there_o be_v diverse_a kind_n of_o society_n kindred_n and_o fréendship_n one_o be_v spiritual_a a_o other_o be_v bodily_a or_o of_o the_o same_o stock_n a_o other_o be_v civil_a order_n a_o comparison_n must_v be_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o one_o order_n and_o such_o like_a wherefore_o when_o we_o reason_n concern_v love_n and_o do_v good_a towards_o our_o neighbour_n there_o ought_v a_o comparison_n to_o be_v make_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o belong_v unto_o one_o degree_n which_o be_v not_o make_v a_o error_n will_v soon_o happen_v that_o which_o i_o have_v now_o speak_v i_o will_v declare_v by_o example_n that_o it_o may_v the_o more_o plain_o appear_v if_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v instruct_v by_o a_o godly_a pastor_n and_o teacher_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o shall_v be_v bring_v to_o regeneration_n and_o the_o same_o man_n have_v therewithal_o a_o father_n of_o who_o he_o be_v beget_v or_o have_v child_n and_o the_o question_n be_v ask_v whether_o he_o be_v more_o bind_v to_o his_o pastor_n or_o else_o to_o his_o father_n and_o child_n we_o must_v not_o answer_v absolute_o see_v with_o our_o answer_n the_o matter_n will_v not_o be_v express_v but_o we_o will_v say_v that_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o concern_v spiritual_a friendship_n we_o ought_v more_v to_o obey_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n that_o teach_v we_o right_o and_o admonish_v we_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n than_o either_o the_o child_n or_o the_o father_n if_o they_o persuade_v thing_n that_o be_v contrary_a and_o repugnant_a but_o if_o we_o demand_v as_o touch_v thing_n of_o a_o other_o sort_n namely_o of_o food_n and_o of_o maintenance_n there_o be_v more_o due_a unto_o parent_n and_o unto_o child_n than_o be_v unto_o other_o though_o they_o be_v minister_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o which_o matter_n the_o scribe_n pharisy_n and_o high_a priest_n offend_v when_o they_o teach_v child_n to_o say_v unto_o their_o parent_n 5_o matth._n 15_o 5_o the_o gift_n which_o i_o offer_v shall_v avail_v thou_o and_o so_o by_o offer_v up_o of_o their_o good_n in_o the_o holy_a ministry_n they_o will_v defraud_v their_o parent_n of_o their_o due_a sustenance_n indeed_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n must_v be_v maintain_v but_o yet_o not_o so_o as_o any_o man_n shall_v defraud_v either_o himself_o or_o his_o family_n of_o necessary_a live_n i_o will_v use_v a_o other_o similitude_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n admit_v that_o a_o man_n be_v in_o the_o camp_n where_o just_a war_n be_v take_v in_o hand_n when_o the_o general_a capteine_n charge_v he_o in_o something_o concern_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o war_n and_o the_o father_n be_v present_a command_v he_o to_o the_o contrary_a in_o this_o case_n the_o son_n shall_v rather_o offer_v himself_o to_o the_o general_a than_o to_o his_o father_n but_o if_o we_o shall_v determine_v of_o household_n business_n and_o of_o thing_n pertain_v to_o live_v and_o sustenance_n the_o parent_n shall_v be_v hear_v and_o not_o the_o general_a capteine_n héereunto_o respect_v that_o say_n of_o ambrose_n when_o he_o say_v in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o office_n i_o do_v no_o less_o choose_v you_o speak_v unto_o his_o flock_n of_o millen_n who_o i_o have_v regenerate_v by_o the_o gospel_n than_o if_o i_o have_v beget_v you_o in_o wedlock_n true_a in_o deed_n be_v that_o which_o he_o speak_v for_o as_o touch_v the_o imploieng_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n of_o doctrine_n of_o amendment_n and_o of_o sacrament_n he_o be_v no_o less_o debtor_n to_o they_o than_o to_o the_o child_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o if_o the_o business_n have_v be_v concern_v the_o food_n and_o maintenance_n of_o body_n although_o he_o may_v not_o forsake_v other_o yet_o he_o shall_v first_o have_v minister_v those_o thing_n to_o his_o own_o moreover_o we_o shall_v call_v a_o other_o matter_n to_o our_o remembrance_n that_o we_o must_v prefer_v the_o commonwealth_n before_o our_o private_a commodity_n and_o this_o perform_v they_o of_o who_o paul_n speak_v in_o the_o 16._o to_o the_o roman_n 4._o verse_n 4._o who_o lay_v down_o their_o neck_n for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o apostle_n those_o man_n very_o deserve_v well_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v very_o much_o praise_v by_o they_o héereunto_o also_o may_v be_v apply_v that_o which_o paul_n testify_v of_o the_o galathian_o that_o if_o it_o have_v be_v possible_a 15._o gal._n 4_o 15._o they_o will_v have_v pluck_v out_o their_o own_o eye_n and_o have_v give_v they_o to_o he_o also_o good_a subject_n if_o their_o good_a magistrate_n happen_v into_o danger_n ought_v not_o to_o spare_v no_o not_o their_o own_o life_n to_o defend_v the_o public_a weal_n and_o safety_n and_o in_o very_a deed_n both_o sort_n of_o man_n i_o mean_v magistrate_n &_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v maintain_v by_o the_o substance_n of_o private_a person_n but_o not_o so_o as_o either_o parent_n or_o child_n shall_v be_v forsake_v for_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n above_o all_o thing_n must_v stand_v in_o force_n
concubine_n at_o home_n so_o say_v they_o the_o issue_n shall_v be_v certain_a certain_a perhaps_o it_o may_v be_v but_o lawful_a it_o shall_v not_o be_v see_v therefore_o that_o this_o mischief_n be_v both_o against_o matrimony_n and_o charity_n and_o also_o the_o public_a weal_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n most_o gréevous_a and_o for_o so_o much_o as_o it_o be_v so_o why_o be_v the_o stew_n at_o this_o day_n open_o suffer_v in_o city_n i_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o ethnik_n i_o speak_v of_o the_o christian_n and_o of_o those_o christian_n which_o will_v alone_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v call_v by_o that_o name_n within_o their_o dominion_n whoredom_n be_v most_o shameful_o maintain_v they_o not_o only_o be_v willing_a unto_o it_o but_o also_o take_v advantage_n and_o revenue_n for_o the_o same_o that_o which_o be_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n against_o matrimony_n against_o charity_n and_o against_o the_o public_a weal_n either_o it_o be_v no_o sin_n at_o all_o or_o else_o it_o be_v a_o notable_a sin_n if_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n why_o be_v it_o not_o take_v away_o and_o wéede_v out_o howbeit_o i_o know_v what_o they_o will_v babble_v augustine_n augustine_n they_o bring_v forth_o augustine_n who_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr ordine_fw-la write_v thus_o take_v away_o brothel_n house_n and_o all_o place_n will_v be_v fill_v with_o filthy_a lust_n but_o let_v we_o consider_v at_o what_o time_n augustine_n write_v this_o book_n doubtless_o while_o he_o be_v yet_o catechumenus_fw-la that_o be_v unbaptised_a and_o not_o sufficient_o instruct_v in_o religion_n and_o although_o he_o have_v not_o be_v catechumenus_fw-la yet_o this_o say_n of_o his_o do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n neither_o with_o very_a augustine_n himself_o who_o in_o another_o place_n affirm_v that_o the_o good_a which_o come_v of_o evil_a as_o a_o recompense_n must_v not_o be_v admit_v which_o also_o paul_n unto_o the_o roman_n teach_v even_o as_o they_o be_v wont_v to_o say_v of_o we_o 8._o rom._n 3_o 8._o let_v we_o do_v evil_a that_o good_a may_v come_v thereof_o who_o damnation_n be_v just_a we_o must_v never_o have_v regard_n to_o the_o end_n and_o event_n when_o we_o be_v urge_v by_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n sometime_o man_n say_v unto_o we_o unless_o thou_o commit_v sin_n this_o or_o that_o evil_n will_v succeed_v but_o we_o must_v answer_v what_o god_n have_v command_v the_o care_n of_o the_o success_n shall_v rest_v upon_o he_o neither_o be_v it_o meet_v that_o one_o only_a sentence_n of_o augustine_n shall_v be_v of_o great_a authority_n than_o so_o many_o reason_n which_o we_o have_v bring_v and_o so_o many_o plain_a place_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 7_o god_n command_v absolute_o and_o by_o express_a word_n 17_o deut._n 23._o 17_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o harlot_n in_o israel_n but_o some_o go_v about_o to_o wrest_v this_o place_n from_o we_o ill_a certain_a word_n take_v both_o in_o the_o good_a part_n and_o the_o ill_a in_o say_v that_o these_o hebrew_n word_n kedescha_n and_o kedeschim_n signify_v not_o whore_n or_o harlot_n but_o rather_o the_o priest_n of_o priapus_n which_o be_v vow_v and_o consecrate_v to_o thing_n most_o filthy_a but_o contrariwise_o i_o think_v that_o kedescha_n signify_v a_o harlot_n and_o kedeschim_n bugger_n and_o effeminate_a person_n god_n will_v have_v neither_o of_o those_o suffer_v among_o the_o people_n and_o that_o which_o they_o object_n of_o the_o holy_a service_n of_o priapus_n it_o be_v nothing_o for_o it_o be_v sufficient_o before_o decree_v touch_v idolatry_n and_o what_o need_v it_o to_o be_v repeat_v again_o yet_o that_o we_o may_v the_o more_o manifest_o understand_v that_o kedescha_n signify_v a_o harlot_n etc._n gen._n 38_o ver_fw-la 15_o etc._n etc._n let_v we_o read_v the_o history_n of_o juda_n and_o thamar_n in_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n and_o there_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o zonah_n and_o kedescha_n be_v take_v both_o for_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o thing_n for_o which_o cause_n we_o must_v note_v that_o there_o be_v certain_a word_n which_o may_v be_v take_v both_o in_o the_o good_a and_o evil_a part_n of_o which_o sort_n among_o the_o hebrews_n be_v this_o word_n kedescha_n which_o signify_v both_o holy_a and_o also_o a_o harlot_n even_o as_o be_v this_o word_n sacrum_n among_o the_o latin_n &_o it_o signify_v curse_a and_o thereupon_o virgil_n say_v auri_fw-la sacra_fw-la fames_fw-la virgil._n virgil._n that_o be_v the_o curse_a hunger_n of_o gold_n this_o hebrew_n word_n kedes_o be_v to_o prepare_v or_o to_o be_v prepare_v whereof_o be_v derive_v that_o word_n which_o signify_v a_o harlot_n because_o such_o woman_n be_v prepare_v and_o set_v ready_a for_o all_o man_n or_o else_o because_o they_o be_v wont_v to_o go_v trimlie_o deck_v and_o paint_a wherefore_o clemens_n say_v clemens_n clemens_n that_o the_o lacedaemonian_n suffer_v harlot_n to_o wear_v wrought_v garment_n fine_a apparel_n and_o gold_n which_o thing_n be_v not_o lawful_a for_o matron_n to_o use_v now_o let_v we_o see_v what_o follow_v in_o deuteronomie_n 18._o verse_n 18._o and_o the_o hire_n of_o a_o harlot_n shall_v not_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o sanctuary_n here_o again_o the_o law_n call_v that_o zonah_n which_o it_o have_v before_o call_v kedescha_n but_o thou_o will_v say_v if_o the_o law_n will_v not_o have_v harlot_n to_o be_v suffer_v what_o need_v it_o to_o have_v forbid_v their_o oblation_n what_o need_v this_o law_n they_o which_o speak_v on_o this_o wise_a do_v seem_v indeed_o to_o speak_v witty_o but_o yet_o they_o speak_v not_o sufficient_o for_o foreign_a nation_n also_o send_v gift_n for_o the_o furniture_n and_o use_n of_o the_o temple_n the_o eunuch_n of_o the_o queen_n of_o aethiopia_n come_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o offer_v in_o the_o temple_n the_o macedonian_n and_o roman_n give_v yéerelie_o oblation_n and_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o temple_n wherefore_o the_o law_n forbid_v that_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v offer_v by_o stranger_n that_o be_v get_v by_o the_o gain_n of_o a_o harlot_n the_o same_o shall_v not_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o sanctuary_n beside_o this_o god_n have_v give_v a_o charge_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o harlot_n in_o israel_n but_o he_o know_v that_o they_o will_v not_o observe_v that_o law_n and_o when_o the_o philistine_n macedonian_n and_o roman_n reign_v over_o they_o they_o have_v harlot_n 31_o matt._n 21_o 31_o yea_o and_o christ_n make_v mention_n of_o harlot_n and_o publican_n together_o then_o right_o well_o do_v god_n first_o forbid_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o harlot_n among_o the_o hebrews_n and_o afterward_o he_o decré_v that_o if_o in_o case_n they_o be_v have_v the_o gain_n come_v of_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o sanctuary_n which_o undoubted_o he_o command_v because_o of_o the_o vileness_n and_o filthiness_n of_o the_o gain_n in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o add_v ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la the_o price_n also_o of_o a_o dog_n shall_v not_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o sanctuary_n because_o that_o beast_n be_v foul_a and_o unclean_a 8_o caligula_n otherwise_o a_o detestable_a monster_n decree_v as_o we_o have_v in_o suetonius_n that_o they_o suetonius_n suetonius_n which_o shall_v commit_v whoredom_n or_o brothelry_n shall_v be_v open_o punish_v hostiensis_n hostiensis_n hereof_o hostiensis_n write_v ridiculous_o harlot_n indeed_o say_v he_o be_v bind_v to_o pay_v and_o to_o offer_v but_o the_o church_n can_v nor_o ought_v not_o to_o receive_v the_o same_o yet_o the_o gloze_n do_v much_o better_a decree_n in_o the_o decretal_n distinction_n the_o 90._o in_o the_o chapter_n oblationis_fw-la namely_o that_o nothing_o at_o all_o which_o come_v of_o the_o gain_n of_o a_o harlot_n shall_v be_v offer_v in_o the_o church_n but_o priest_n and_o monk_n when_o they_o fear_v that_o some_o of_o their_o profit_n shall_v be_v go_v have_v devise_v a_o other_o reason_n for_o although_o say_v they_o the_o gain_n of_o harlot_n can_v be_v receive_v for_o a_o oblation_n 21._o the_o pope_n make_v a_o unjust_a gain_n of_o harlot_n look_v in_o gen._n 38_o 21._o yet_o nothing_o let_v but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v receive_v for_o alm_n but_o after_o what_o sort_n do_v the_o pope_n receive_v the_o money_n of_o harlot_n sure_o not_o as_o a_o oblation_n because_o he_o can_v nor_o as_o alm_n because_o he_o be_v not_o poor_a it_o rest_v therefore_o that_o he_o receive_v the_o same_o as_o a_o prince_n the_o lord_n will_v not_o have_v this_o kind_n of_o money_n in_o his_o sanctuary_n but_o the_o pope_n will_v have_v it_o in_o his_o treasury_n and_o he_o have_v it_o and_o get_v a_o wonder_a great_a gain_n by_o it_o who_o vicar_n then_o be_v the_o pope_n god_n vicar_n nay_o god_n
promote_v if_o the_o church_n shall_v have_v a_o great_a need_n and_o he_o excel_v in_o virtue_n the_o manner_n of_o his_o birth_n shall_v be_v no_o let_v unto_o he_o 6._o 1._o tim._n 3_o 2._o titus_n 1_o 6._o for_o paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o to_o titus_n when_o he_o diligent_o write_v of_o the_o election_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n do_v forbid_v none_o of_o this_o kind_n of_o man_n but_o thou_o will_v say_v that_o in_o the_o old_a law_n bastard_n be_v exclude_v from_o the_o ministry_n i_o grant_v it_o nevertheless_o we_o be_v not_o now_o bind_v to_o that_o law_n &_o it_o be_v make_v only_o for_o the_o detestation_n of_o adultery_n yet_o now_o if_o they_o be_v able_a to_o profit_v the_o church_n great_o their_o election_n must_v not_o be_v forbid_v decretal_n a_o vain_a difference_n put_v by_o the_o decretal_n and_o it_o be_v vain_a which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o decretal_n that_o legitimate_v may_v be_v choose_v but_o bastard_n ought_v to_o be_v reject_v except_o with_o dispensation_n as_o we_o have_v in_o the_o title_n de_fw-fr electionibus_fw-la for_o these_o counterfeit_a colour_n and_o deceit_n the_o roman_a bishop_n have_v invent_v to_o amplify_v their_o dominion_n but_o the_o judgement_n which_o i_o have_v allow_v agree_v with_o charity_n and_o we_o may_v gather_v the_o like_a of_o it_o out_o of_o the_o civil_a law_n where_o it_o treat_v de_fw-fr decurionibus_fw-la that_o be_v of_o captain_n over_o ten_o soldier_n since_o these_o be_v civil_a judge_n for_o private_a city_n and_o town_n wherefore_o it_o be_v decree_v decuriones_fw-la bastard_n may_v be_v make_v decuriones_fw-la that_o bastard_n may_v be_v make_v decuriones_fw-la if_o necessity_n so_o require_v in_o the_o digest_v de_fw-fr decurionibus_fw-la in_o the_o law_n generaliter_fw-la in_o paraph_n debet_fw-la enim_fw-la the_o law_n therefore_o will_v have_v that_o order_n namely_o of_o decuriones_fw-la to_o be_v full_a howbeit_o if_o another_o bear_v legitimate_a be_v a_o suitor_n together_o for_o the_o same_o he_o shall_v be_v prefer_v before_o the_o bastard_n so_o think_v i_o that_o we_o must_v do_v in_o the_o church_n that_o if_o any_o man_n be_v as_o good_a and_o as_o apt_a for_o the_o ministry_n be_v a_o legitimate_a bear_v let_v consideration_n be_v have_v to_o he_o before_o the_o bastard_n who_o must_v give_v place_n in_o that_o case_n unto_o he_o that_o be_v legitimate_a it_o be_v add_v in_o the_o law_n if_o they_o be_v honest_a and_o good_a the_o blemish_n of_o birth_n shall_v nothing_o hinder_v they_o in_o the_o same_o title_n in_o the_o law_n spurios_fw-la and_o in_o the_o law_n follow_v these_o thing_n have_v i_o therefore_o mention_v that_o we_o may_v understand_v by_o what_o right_a jeptha_n be_v by_o his_o brethren_n thrust_v out_o and_o that_o the_o agreement_n of_o the_o civil_a law_n with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perceive_v of_o adultery_n 17_o doubtless_o adultery_n be_v a_o gréevous_a sin_n chapter_n in_o 2._o sam._n 11._o 26._o how_o grievous_a a_o sin_n adultery_n be_v look_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o same_o chapter_n and_o how_o gréevous_a it_o be_v as_o tertullian_n gather_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr monogamia_fw-la we_o may_v perceive_v by_o the_o contrary_a in_o compare_v the_o same_o unto_o matrimony_n let_v we_o consider_v wherein_o matrimony_n consist_v god_n make_v man_n and_o woman_n he_o join_v they_o together_o in_o one_o flesh_n wherein_o matrimony_n do_v stand_v and_o if_o so_o be_v that_o one_o flesh_n be_v rend_v and_o pull_v away_o so_o as_o a_o other_o be_v mingle_v and_o set_v in_o place_n adultery_n be_v commit_v this_o heinous_a crime_n have_v be_v forbid_v ever_o since_o the_o first_o original_n of_o mankind_n as_o many_o of_o the_o father_n have_v prove_v god_n make_v man_n and_o woman_n not_o man_n and_o woman_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o every_o man_n shall_v be_v content_a with_o his_o own_o wife_n and_o every_o wife_n with_o her_o own_o husband_n if_o now_o then_o a_o man_n be_v not_o content_a with_o his_o own_o wife_n he_o shall_v not_o have_v one_o wife_n but_o many_o man_n shall_v leave_v his_o father_n &_o mother_n 24._o gen._n 2_o 24._o and_o cleave_v to_o his_o wife_n if_o he_o be_v pull_v away_o doubtless_o he_o cleave_v not_o to_o she_o chrysostome_n upon_o the_o 51._o psalm_n in_o the_o first_o homily_n say_v that_o the_o fruit_n of_o adultery_n be_v murder_n and_o poison_v in_o his_o 42._o homily_n upon_o matthew_n he_o say_v that_o adulterous_a woman_n very_o oftentimes_o practice_v murder_n and_o that_o not_o of_o one_o man_n only_o but_o of_o all_o they_o also_o unto_o who_o they_o think_v that_o their_o infamy_n may_v come_v as_o do_v herodia_n jerom_n against_o jovinian_a towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o book_n whatsoever_o tumult_n say_v he_o be_v in_o tragedy_n be_v the_o spite_n that_o be_v between_o marry_a wife_n and_o their_o husband_n harlot_n moreover_o agamemnon_n be_v slay_v by_o the_o adulterer_n aegistus_n atreus_n and_o thyestes_n by_o reason_n of_o adultery_n take_v in_o hand_n those_o cruel_a enterprise_n the_o ravish_v of_o helen_n stir_v up_o the_o most_o cruel_a war_n of_o troie_n in_o this_o be_v a_o certain_a sink_n of_o all_o evil_a cyprian_a in_o the_o second_o epistle_n of_o his_o four_o book_n to_o antonius_n write_v that_o in_o the_o first_o time_n there_o be_v such_o bishop_n as_o will_v never_o let_v adulterer_n to_o rest_v in_o the_o church_n but_o there_o be_v other_o bishop_n that_o after_o a_o good_a space_n of_o time_n if_o they_o show_v forth_o any_o fruit_n of_o penance_n will_v reconcile_v they_o after_o a_o sort_n augustine_n in_o his_o 42._o epistle_n to_o vincentius_n the_o donatist_n allege_v this_o epistle_n and_o say_v that_o this_o diversity_n of_o custom_n the_o bishop_n have_v and_o yet_o they_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n christ_n will_v that_o matrimony_n shall_v not_o be_v break_v off_o and_o yet_o he_o so_o account_v of_o adultery_n as_o he_o make_v it_o the_o cause_n why_o matrimony_n shall_v be_v undoone_v by_o adultery_n the_o household_n be_v disquiet_v the_o bed_n itself_o be_v dishonour_v great_a injury_n be_v do_v unto_o the_o child_n for_o either_o they_o be_v bastard_n or_o else_o take_v for_o bastard_n bartholus_fw-la ad_fw-la legem_fw-la juliam_fw-la de_fw-la adulterijs_fw-la in_o the_o pandect_n write_v about_o the_o title_n of_o the_o same_o book_n that_o adultery_n be_v the_o most_o gréevous_a crime_n of_o all_o other_o except_o treason_n to_o wit_n as_o concern_v civil_a regiment_n thales_n milesius_n judge_v that_o perjury_n be_v not_o a_o more_o gréevous_a sin_n than_o adultery_n for_o a_o certain_a adulterer_n be_v ready_a to_o take_v his_o oath_n that_o he_o commit_v not_o adultery_n and_o perjury_n say_v he_o be_v not_o worse_a than_o adultery_n idolatry_n whether_o adultery_n be_v a_o more_o grievous_a sin_n than_o idolatry_n chrysostome_n in_o his_o 62._o homily_n upon_o john_n be_v bold_a to_o write_v that_o adultery_n be_v a_o more_o gréevous_a sin_n than_o idolatry_n and_o he_o allow_v two_o reason_n both_o which_o nevertheless_o be_v derive_v from_o matrimony_n and_o the_o nature_n thereof_o which_o be_v write_v by_o paul_n in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n 12._o 2._o cor._n 7_o 12._o where_o he_o decree_v that_o a_o believe_a husband_n may_v dwell_v with_o his_o unbelieve_a wife_n but_o he_o grant_v not_o that_o a_o adulterer_n may_v dwell_v together_o with_o a_o adulteress_n wherefore_o that_o the_o same_o be_v a_o more_o gréevous_a fault_n another_o reason_n be_v the_o beléeve_a wife_n be_v not_o defile_v with_o the_o company_n of_o her_o idolatrous_a husband_n but_o a_o adulteress_n be_v always_o pollute_a argument_n a_o false_a argument_n if_o she_o be_v join_v with_o a_o adulterer_n therefore_o he_o conclude_v that_o adultery_n be_v a_o thing_n more_o gréevous_a than_o idolatry_n but_o under_o correction_n of_o so_o notable_a a_o man_n i_o may_v say_v that_o the_o argument_n be_v weak_a we_o must_v not_o compare_v matrimony_n with_o idolatry_n but_o matrimony_n and_o adultery_n must_v be_v compare_v between_o themselves_o these_o two_o be_v in_o such_o sort_n as_o the_o one_o of_o they_o in_o his_o own_o nature_n and_o by_o the_o appointment_n of_o god_n be_v good_a and_o the_o other_o be_v sin_n and_o whereas_o in_o matrimony_n the_o one_o part_n be_v sometime_o a_o unbeléever_n that_o happen_v by_o accident_n but_o the_o greatness_n of_o sin_n must_v not_o be_v judge_v by_o those_o thing_n which_o come_v by_o chance_n or_o as_o they_o speak_v in_o the_o school_n which_o happen_v by_o accident_n a_o beléeve_a wife_n may_v dwell_v with_o a_o unbeléeve_a husband_n so_o he_o be_v willing_a thereunto_o for_o matrimony_n be_v a_o good_a thing_n it_o be_v not_o so_o pollute_v with_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o other_o party_n
unproperlie_o according_a to_o the_o common_a proverb_n a_o straieng_v tongue_n tell_v truth_n he_o be_v the_o child_n of_o death_n for_o they_o be_v capital_a fault_n which_o he_o have_v commit_v and_o he_o shall_v restore_v eight_o fold_n that_o be_v he_o shall_v pay_v much_o true_o it_o seem_v very_o hard_a to_o punish_v theft_n with_o death_n 2._o the_o law_n in_o some_o case_n stay_v a_o thief_n exod._n 22_o 2._o nevertheless_o we_o must_v consider_v that_o in_o that_o law_n of_o exodus_fw-la this_o be_v ordain_v that_o if_o a_o thief_n have_v come_v arm_v in_o the_o night_n with_o intent_n to_o steal_v any_o thing_n away_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a to_o kill_v he_o and_o that_o without_o danger_n in_o this_o case_n when_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o rich_a man_n do_v take_v away_o from_o the_o poor_a man_n his_o one_o only_o lamb_n there_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o violence_n use_v and_o not_o a_o fraud_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n therefore_o if_o the_o punishment_n be_v augment_v and_o he_o judge_v worthy_a of_o death_n restitution_n four_o fold_v restitution_n and_o as_o for_o the_o restore_n of_o four_o fold_n we_o have_v not_o only_o a_o law_n but_o also_o the_o example_n of_o zachaeus_n 8._o luke_n 19_o 8._o in_o the_o 19_o of_o luke_n if_o i_o have_v take_v aught_o from_o any_o man_n by_o deceit_n he_o say_v to_o christ_n i_o restore_v he_o four_o fold_n restitution_n seven_o fold_v restitution_n he_o say_v not_o i_o restore_v he_o double_a but_o to_o show_v his_o duty_n the_o more_o he_o choose_v to_o himself_o the_o straight_a punishment_n again_o there_o be_v a_o place_n in_o the_o sixth_o of_o the_o proverb_n 30._o verse_n 30._o where_o solomon_n say_v that_o a_o thief_n which_o be_v take_v shall_v restore_v seven_o fold_n in_o which_o place_n it_o may_v be_v gather_v as_o it_o seem_v that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o judge_n to_o increase_v the_o punishment_n for_o at_o this_o time_n thief_n do_v restore_v seven_o fold_n some_o answer_n that_o it_o be_v not_o there_o mean_v of_o any_o precise_a number_n in_o the_o restitution_n of_o thing_n take_v away_o but_o that_o a_o thief_n shall_v be_v compel_v to_o make_v a_o perfect_a restitution_n in_o that_o place_n he_o compare_v the_o sin_n of_o theft_n and_o adultery_n together_o and_o will_v show_v and_o declare_v adultery_n to_o be_v the_o great_a if_o a_o thief_n have_v no_o other_o intent_n but_o to_o satisfy_v hunger_n it_o redound_v not_o to_o his_o shame_n if_o he_o be_v take_v he_o be_v compel_v to_o yield_v again_o that_o which_o he_o have_v take_v away_o if_o he_o be_v take_v in_o adultery_n he_o be_v punish_v with_o death_n 25._o whether_o david_n be_v punish_v above_o four_o fold_n 2._o sam._n 16_o 22._o 2._o sam._n 12_o 18._o &_o 13_o 28._o &_o 18_o 14._o and_o 1._o kin._n 2_o 25._o touch_v the_o restitution_n of_o four_o fold_n it_o may_v seem_v that_o david_n be_v punish_v not_o only_o to_o the_o proportion_n of_o four_o fold_n but_o of_o above_o eight_o fold_n for_o his_o ten_o concubine_n be_v defile_v by_o absalon_n and_o although_o himself_o be_v not_o slay_v yet_o be_v he_o reserve_v to_o great_a affliction_n for_o four_o of_o his_o son_n be_v consume_v first_o he_o who_o he_o have_v by_o bethsaba_n than_o amnon_n afterward_o absalon_n last_o adonias_n 3_o the_o crime_n of_o steal_v away_o of_o servant_n 5._o in_o gen._n 37_o verse_n 25._o the_o crime_n of_o steal_v away_o of_o servant_n punish_v by_o death_n deut._n 24_o 7._o exo._n 21_o 16._o gen._n 37_o 28._o matt._n 27_o 5._o or_o child_n and_o sell_v of_o they_o be_v by_o the_o civil_a law_n punish_v with_o death_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o 48._o book_n of_o the_o digest_v and_o in_o deuteronomie_n the_o 24._o chapter_n the_o punishment_n which_o god_n appoint_v for_o the_o same_o do_v yet_o declare_v the_o grievousnes_n of_o the_o crime_n for_o this_o fault_n the_o hebrews_n confess_v that_o they_o be_v many_o year_n together_o vex_v by_o pharaoh_n in_o egypt_n assure_o the_o sell_v of_o christ_n drive_v judas_n to_o hang_v himself_o and_o in_o the_o end_n wrought_v confusion_n both_o to_o those_o that_o buy_v he_o and_o to_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n in_o the_o book_n zahor_n wherein_o be_v prayer_n which_o the_o jew_n repeat_v in_o the_o day_n of_o purification_n when_o they_o fast_o for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o their_o sin_n there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o ten_o rabbin_n of_o great_a name_n the_o which_o be_v slay_v by_o caesar_n adrianus_n for_o caesar_n demand_v of_o they_o what_o punishment_n their_o law_n take_v of_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v find_v guilty_a of_o steal_v free_a man_n away_o and_o sell_v they_o who_o wise_o answer_v out_o of_o deuteronomie_n 24_o 7._o that_o they_o be_v worthy_a of_o death_n whereupon_o the_o emperor_n put_v they_o to_o death_n lay_v to_o their_o charge_n that_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o this_o crime_n but_o what_o free_a man_n it_o be_v that_o he_o charge_v they_o to_o have_v sell_v it_o be_v not_o there_o express_v yet_o in_o their_o thalmud_n to_o the_o end_n to_o slander_n christ_n when_o they_o make_v a_o declaration_n of_o this_o fact_n they_o say_v it_o be_v joseph_n and_o lest_o they_o shall_v seem_v to_o speak_v against_o all_o reason_n or_o likeliehood_n that_o after_o so_o many_o age_n these_o man_n shall_v be_v punish_v for_o a_o wickedness_n so_o long_o before_o commit_v they_o speak_v more_o absurdlie_o that_o soul_n remove_v from_o one_o to_o another_o and_o therefore_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o ten_o brethren_n of_o joseph_n do_v remove_v into_o these_o ten_o rabbin_n and_o that_o for_o this_o cause_n they_o be_v punish_v after_o such_o a_o manner_n of_o well_o do_v and_o hospitality_n 4_o there_o be_v a_o notable_a place_n in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o 4._o in_o 1._o cor._n 16._o verse_n 4._o corinthian_n basil_n the_o community_n of_o thing_n among_o the_o anabaptist_n be_v confit_v look_v in_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr votis_fw-la pag._n 79._o put_v forth_o at_o basil_n the_o 16._o chapter_n wherein_o we_o be_v teach_v beneficence_n and_o liberality_n by_o the_o which_o and_o by_o such_o like_a the_o anabaptist_n which_o declare_v that_o among_o christian_n all_n thing_n ought_v to_o be_v common_a be_v confute_v for_o if_o their_o opinion_n be_v true_a there_o have_v be_v no_o need_n to_o exhort_v the_o faithful_a to_o distribute_v alm_n unto_o the_o poor_a for_o every_o one_o may_v take_v from_o who_o he_o will_v but_o forsomuch_o as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n commend_v alm_n unto_o we_o they_o show_v plain_o that_o every_o one_o be_v a_o possessor_n of_o his_o own_o good_n although_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o communicate_v with_o his_o needy_a neighbour_n of_o the_o fruit_n and_o profit_n which_o come_v of_o the_o same_o we_o see_v also_o in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n resist_v not_o paul_n in_o say_v what_o tell_v thou_o we_o of_o the_o jerosolomit_n have_v not_o we_o poor_a people_n of_o our_o own_o with_o we_o who_o we_o ought_v to_o find_v and_o reléeve_v suffer_v we_o to_o distribute_v our_o own_o good_n among_o our_o own_o poor_a but_o when_o they_o have_v hear_v paul_n determine_v that_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o that_o every_o church_n shall_v find_v their_o own_o poor_a but_o be_v also_o bind_v to_o reléeve_v the_o brethren_n of_o other_o church_n if_o their_o ability_n serve_v they_o be_v ready_a to_o give_v their_o consent_n lace_v charity_n must_v be_v do_v in_o order_n yet_o not_o to_o be_v too_o straight_o lace_v for_o although_o that_o charity_n ought_v to_o be_v do_v in_o due_a order_n yet_o must_v it_o not_o be_v so_o straight_o lace_v as_o it_o shall_v have_v respect_n only_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v she_o own_o in_o deed_n we_o ought_v to_o begin_v with_o such_o as_o be_v our_o own_o but_o we_o be_v not_o there_o to_o make_v a_o stay_n furthermore_o in_o distribute_v of_o alm_n there_o must_v be_v a_o consideration_n have_v of_o the_o honesty_n of_o those_o that_o be_v in_o need_n wherefore_o paul_n say_v unto_o the_o galathian_o 10._o gal._n 6_o 10._o let_v we_o do_v well_o unto_o all_o man_n especial_o unto_o those_o which_o be_v of_o the_o household_n of_o faith_n beside_o this_o there_o must_v be_v a_o special_a consideration_n have_v of_o they_o touch_v who_o the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v give_v express_a commandment_n as_o be_v the_o father_n the_o mother_n the_o wife_n the_o child_n and_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n thirdlie_o necessity_n must_v be_v regard_v for_o otherwise_o there_o happen_v case_n sometime_o wherein_o our_o help_n can_v be_v defer_v with_o a_o safe_a conscience_n in_o which_o time_n both_o father_n mother_n and_o the_o rest_n unto_o who_o we_o be_v
catholic_a which_o be_v a_o greek_a word_n and_o signify_v no_o other_o thing_n than_o if_o thou_o shall_v say_v universal_a for_o that_o it_o be_v not_o bind_v more_o to_o one_o place_n than_o to_o a_o other_o but_o even_o as_o god_n be_v a_o god_n of_o the_o whole_a universal_a world_n even_o so_o will_v he_o that_o the_o body_n of_o his_o son_n which_o be_v his_o church_n shall_v be_v extend_v into_o every_o place_n with_o he_o there_o be_v no_o exception_n of_o person_n neither_o have_v he_o respect_v whether_o those_o which_o he_o call_v into_o his_o church_n be_v either_o husbandman_n or_o smith_n man_n or_o woman_n prince_n or_o servant_n rich_a or_o poor_a barbarous_a citizen_n or_o gentile_n as_o though_o he_o be_v move_v for_o these_o outward_a thing_n to_o choose_v they_o but_o of_o every_o nation_n he_o choose_v those_o who_o he_o think_v meet_a wherefore_o the_o church_n be_v a_o universal_a body_n compact_v of_o man_n of_o every_o kind_n and_o condition_n but_o it_o excel_v also_o in_o a_o noble_a society_n which_o be_v of_o such_o sort_n as_o whosoever_o be_v true_o gather_v together_o into_o that_o body_n be_v endue_v with_o the_o same_o feel_v of_o faith_n and_o undoubted_o in_o vain_a shall_v every_o other_o consent_n be_v if_o mind_n disagree_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n neither_o be_v there_o ever_o any_o thing_n that_o bring_v more_o detriment_n unto_o this_o faith_n than_o the_o invention_n of_o man_n from_o hence_o have_v flow_v all_o the_o heresy_n that_o ever_o be_v which_o in_o very_a deed_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o opinion_n of_o man_n conceive_v beside_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o sow_v abroad_o among_o diverse_a people_n as_o if_o they_o be_v certain_a divine_a mystery_n which_o bring_v salvation_n or_o else_o work_v most_o acceptable_a unto_o god_n and_o forsomuch_o as_o such_o doctrine_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o devise_n of_o man_n by_o which_o the_o author_n of_o they_o have_v seek_v their_o own_o gain_n and_o commodity_n first_o they_o be_v mere_a lie_n deceit_n and_o wicked_a juggling_n secondlie_o when_o as_o they_o procee_v from_o the_o invention_n of_o man_n they_o can_v satisfy_v all_o man_n for_o look_v how_o many_o man_n so_o many_o sundry_a opinion_n there_o be_v so_o that_o some_o dissent_n in_o one_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o some_o in_o another_o so_o in_o very_a deed_n it_o happen_v among_o the_o greek_n and_o other_o christian_n which_o inhabit_v towards_o the_o east_n part_n who_o if_o thou_o examine_v thou_o shall_v undoubted_o find_v that_o by_o a_o common_a consent_n they_o have_v allow_v the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o in_o those_o sundry_a superstition_n the_o which_o they_o have_v oftentimes_o devise_v there_o will_v appear_v great_a disagréement_n superstition_n the_o roman_a church_n abound_v with_o superstition_n 38_o howbeit_o in_o these_o devise_n of_o superstition_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n carry_v away_o the_o price_n for_o while_o they_o provide_v to_o stuff_n into_o the_o pure_a and_o simple_a religion_n of_o christ_n infinite_a abomination_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o sink_v of_o paganism_n in_o restore_v and_o as_o they_o say_v or_o rather_o as_o they_o lie_v in_o reform_v they_o to_o a_o better_a form_n it_o have_v tread_v under_o foot_n and_o destroy_v all_o thing_n also_o this_o it_o obstinate_o urge_v that_o every_o man_n faith_n do_v rest_n in_o such_o goodly_a thing_n and_o man_n invention_n be_v more_o esteem_v than_o the_o lawful_a doctrine_n of_o the_o truth_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a fountain_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o this_o may_v not_o other_o which_o in_o like_a manner_n be_v infect_v with_o their_o own_o superstition_n abide_v that_o they_o any_o less_o than_o the_o roman_n shall_v stout_o keep_v still_o and_o defend_v their_o feign_a worshipping_n and_o humane_a invention_n but_o they_o which_o have_v embrace_v the_o principal_a and_o sincere_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v utter_a enemy_n against_o those_o superstition_n see_v they_o perceive_v that_o thereby_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o merit_n be_v altogether_o obscure_v the_o honour_n of_o god_n translate_v unto_o his_o creature_n his_o service_n use_v without_o his_o word_n &_o set_v forth_o only_o after_o the_o devise_n of_o man_n so_o that_o the_o church_n which_o at_o this_o day_n challenge_v proud_o unto_o itself_o alone_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a she_o alone_o i_o say_v more_o than_o other_o have_v sever_v and_o even_o rend_v in_o sunder_o that_o common_a and_o universal_a society_n of_o the_o faithful_a for_o if_o it_o have_v stay_v itself_o in_o that_o religion_n and_o service_n which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v prescribe_v unto_o we_o there_o have_v not_o proceed_v so_o many_o schism_n from_o thence_o but_o hitherto_o it_o have_v use_v no_o measure_n of_o her_o own_o feign_a devise_n and_o it_o have_v endeavour_v by_o force_n &_o arm_n to_o constrain_v every_o man_n to_o receive_v the_o same_o from_o hence_o have_v rise_v infinite_a dissension_n among_o which_o there_o be_v some_o that_o remain_v unto_o this_o day_n as_o experience_n itself_o plain_o testify_v and_o as_o touch_v those_o that_o have_v be_v in_o the_o former_a age_n whosoever_o will_v diligent_o apply_v his_o mind_n in_o read_v of_o history_n shall_v easy_o perceive_v they_o howbeit_o whatsoever_o sathan_n by_o his_o cunning_n fast_o the_o catholic_a church_n stand_v fast_o have_v wrought_v the_o catholic_a church_n remain_v still_o steadfast_a and_o immooveable_a and_o shall_v firm_o abide_v even_o until_o the_o last_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o the_o same_o betoken_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o universal_a body_n compact_v together_o of_o man_n of_o every_o state_n and_o condition_n the_o which_o in_o what_o part_n soever_o of_o the_o earth_n they_o dwell_v they_o retain_v the_o same_o faith_n and_o grace_n righteousness_n holiness_n and_o happiness_n and_o final_o they_o embrace_v every_o good_a thing_n offer_v they_o in_o christ_n and_o so_o as_o they_o will_v never_o suffer_v themselves_o one_o jot_n to_o be_v lead_v from_o that_o truth_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v reveal_v to_o we_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o they_o will_v assure_v themselves_o of_o that_o only_o worship_v to_o be_v lawful_a and_o acceptable_a unto_o god_n which_o he_o have_v prescribe_v in_o those_o holy_a scripture_n 39_o neither_o be_v they_o for_o any_o other_o end_n compact_v together_o in_o this_o society_n spiritual_a a_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n but_o spiritual_a but_o that_o they_o shall_v edify_v one_o a_o other_o to_o their_o power_n even_o as_o the_o join_v together_o that_o be_v in_o the_o member_n of_o a_o man_n body_n be_v chéeflie_o ordain_v for_o the_o help_n and_o preservation_n of_o every_o particular_a member_n the_o church_n strive_v not_o to_o the_o intent_n it_o may_v challenge_v unto_o itself_o some_o chief_a empire_n or_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n it_o promise_v no_o such_o end_n unto_o itself_o as_o it_o will_v heap_v up_o exceed_a treasure_n and_o earthly_a riches_n the_o scope_n thereof_o be_v not_o to_o rule_v nation_n to_o make_v war_n to_o lay_v hold_n upon_o city_n have_v what_o weapon_n the_o church_n have_v and_o to_o vanquish_v they_o indeed_o this_o body_n be_v not_o destitute_a of_o his_o weapon_n but_o these_o be_v spiritual_a and_o not_o carnal_a weapon_n namely_o the_o word_n and_o the_o spirit_n with_o the_o which_o it_o overcom_v the_o wisdom_n of_o man_n cast_v it_o to_o the_o ground_n lead_v captive_a the_o mind_n and_o cogitation_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o same_o undoubted_o oppress_v not_o the_o body_n with_o tyrannical_a servitude_n or_o draw_v away_o man_n good_n by_o gréevous_a tribute_n this_o self-same_a doctrine_n do_v paul_n in_o very_a many_o word_n inculcate_v in_o his_o late_a epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 4._o 1._o cor._n 10_o 4._o where_o he_o very_o well_o describe_v the_o wrestle_n of_o this_o congregation_n and_o he_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n entreat_v there_o of_o his_o own_o and_o of_o other_o of_o the_o apostle_n authority_n say_v that_o the_o same_o be_v grant_v unto_o he_o to_o edify_v and_o not_o to_o destroy_v unto_o the_o which_o notwithstanding_o they_o do_v singular_o bend_v themselves_o which_o will_v alone_o be_v call_v head_n and_o apostle_n of_o the_o church_n howbeit_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n with_o all_o their_o power_n they_o resist_v the_o word_n of_o god_n neither_o do_v they_o suffer_v the_o perfect_a state_n of_o our_o justification_n to_o be_v preach_v but_o rather_o by_o their_o humane_a decree_n and_o constitution_n lie_v infinite_a snare_n against_o the_o miserable_a soul_n of_o the_o people_n commit_v to_o they_o the_o which_o notwithstanding_o be_v redeem_v by_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o further_o they_o pollute_v with_o their_o
by_o the_o number_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n but_o how_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o satan_n be_v bind_v in_o this_o time_n it_o can_v be_v so_o easy_o answer_v for_o even_o now_o also_o the_o church_n be_v gréevouslie_o vex_v by_o he_o but_o augustine_n think_v bind_v why_o satan_n be_v say_v to_o be_v bind_v that_o he_o be_v therefore_o bind_v because_o his_o strength_n be_v break_v and_o christ_n have_v overcome_v the_o strong_a arm_a man_n so_o as_o he_o can_v now_o in_o such_o sort_n rage_n as_o he_o will_v but_o especial_o because_o he_o can_v turn_v the_o elect_a &_o those_o that_o be_v predestinate_a unto_o everlasting_a life_n from_o their_o appoint_a salvation_n albeit_o as_o touch_v this_o even_o before_o christ_n ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n satan_n be_v no_o less_o hinder_v than_o he_o be_v now_o that_o he_o may_v not_o be_v able_a to_o disturb_v the_o elect_a from_o eternal_a life_n but_o here_o it_o may_v be_v answer_v that_o they_o which_o so_o live_v be_v few_o in_o number_n before_o christ_n for_o the_o devil_n range_v and_o spoil_v in_o a_o manner_n everywhere_a throughout_o the_o world_n except_o some_o of_o the_o israelite_n and_o a_o few_o other_o but_o now_o after_o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v spread_v abroad_o throughout_o the_o world_n the_o power_n and_o strength_n of_o satan_n be_v much_o more_o restrain_v and_o this_o may_v sufficient_o appear_v by_o the_o cease_n of_o oracle_n and_o by_o the_o overthrow_n of_o idolatry_n in_o a_o manner_n every_o where_o wherefore_o i_o think_v with_o augustine_n that_o this_o renew_n of_o creature_n shall_v not_o serve_v to_o this_o use_n that_o the_o saint_n shall_v use_v they_o live_v with_o christ_n in_o any_o temporal_a kingdom_n in_o this_o world_n and_o as_o for_o the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o prophet_n which_o be_v every_o where_o set_v forth_o touch_v the_o kingdom_n of_o messiah_n metaphorical_a the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o prophet_n touch_v the_o kingdme_n of_o christ_n be_v metaphorical_a and_o which_o make_v mention_v of_o certain_a thing_n carnal_a and_o that_o belong_v to_o a_o earthly_a kingdom_n they_o be_v so_o to_o be_v take_v as_o we_o understand_v they_o to_o describe_v by_o such_o metaphor_n as_o be_v commanlie_a thought_n agreeable_a to_o the_o greatness_n and_o majesty_n of_o our_o kingdom_n the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o now_o exercise_v in_o the_o church_n &_o which_o in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n he_o will_v show_v forth_o with_o great_a power_n and_o this_o the_o prophet_n themselves_o have_v sufficient_o signify_v see_v they_o have_v interlace_v many_o thing_n which_o far_o exceed_v belief_n and_o go_v beyond_o the_o course_n of_o humane_a thing_n for_o therein_o they_o plain_o show_v that_o they_o speak_v metaphoricallie_o but_o to_o return_v to_o our_o purpose_n we_o think_v that_o the_o world_n as_o touch_v the_o nature_n and_o substance_n thereof_o shall_v not_o utterlie_o perish_v but_o rather_o as_o write_v esaie_n peter_n and_o the_o book_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n and_o also_o paul_n in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v renew_v and_o of_o this_o renovation_n there_o be_v set_v forth_o two_o principal_a condition_n heat_n two_o principal_a condition_n of_o the_o renovation_n of_o the_o world_n all_o manner_n of_o light_n do_v not_o give_v heat_n the_o one_o be_v immortality_n and_o the_o other_o be_v light_a the_o schoolman_n have_v note_v that_o that_o light_n shall_v not_o be_v such_o as_o can_v cause_v heat_n for_o if_o it_o shall_v so_o do_v all_o thing_n shall_v soon_o be_v dry_v up_o and_o burn_v and_o it_o be_v no_o difficult_a thing_n to_o find_v light_n which_o engender_v not_o heat_n for_o there_o be_v find_v many_o precious_a stone_n most_o bright_a which_o give_v no_o heat_n at_o all_o 23_o now_o that_o these_o thing_n be_v thus_o declare_v let_v we_o consider_v of_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n whether_o they_o also_o shall_v be_v preserve_v as_o plant_n precious_a stone_n metal_n brute_n beast_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n the_o schoolman_n think_v that_o man_n be_v renew_v which_o be_v the_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o world_n other_o creature_n shall_v be_v restore_v also_o which_o say_v be_v most_o true_a for_o it_o be_v gather_v by_o the_o word_n of_o paul_n but_o as_o touch_v the_o part_n they_o think_v that_o only_a heaven_n and_o the_o element_n and_o the_o body_n of_o man_n shall_v remain_v thing_n a_o reason_n of_o the_o schoolman_n touch_v the_o unmortalitie_n of_o thing_n yet_o in_o my_o judgement_n the_o reason_n that_o they_o bring_v be_v weak_a for_o they_o affirm_v that_o only_o those_o thing_n shall_v have_v immortality_n which_o after_o some_o sort_n be_v make_v fit_a for_o it_o such_o be_v a_o celestial_a body_n which_o be_v altogether_o simple_a and_o be_v not_o change_v by_o contrary_a quality_n the_o element_n also_o which_o as_o touch_v part_n be_v engender_v and_o corrupt_v yet_o as_o touch_v the_o whole_a do_v always_o abide_v so_o say_v they_o also_o of_o man_n who_o although_o he_o have_v a_o transitory_a body_n yet_o he_o have_v a_o immortal_a soul_n yea_o rather_o the_o body_n itself_o be_v so_o make_v at_o the_o beginning_n as_o it_o have_v possibility_n not_o to_o die_v wherefore_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v absurd_a if_o immortality_n be_v also_o communicate_v with_o it_o reason_n a_o disable_n of_o the_o former_a reason_n howbeit_o this_o reason_n be_v weak_a for_o two_o cause_n first_o for_o that_o without_o any_o authority_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o take_v away_o renovation_n from_o many_o part_n of_o the_o world_n secondlie_o because_o that_o which_o it_o affirm_v be_v even_o as_o doubtful_a as_o be_v that_o which_o be_v conclude_v namely_o that_o those_o thing_n only_o shall_v be_v renew_v with_o immortality_n which_o by_o their_o constitution_n seem_v fit_a for_o the_o same_o nature_n immortality_n be_v the_o mere_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o depend_v not_o of_o nature_n for_o see_v this_o immortality_n be_v the_o liberal_a and_o mere_a gift_n of_o god_n it_o can_v depend_v of_o any_o mean_n or_o power_n of_o nature_n for_o that_o power_n of_o god_n whereby_o both_o the_o heaven_n and_o the_o element_n shall_v be_v restore_v unto_o immortality_n can_v preserve_v also_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o as_o the_o element_n remain_v whole_a although_o their_o part_n be_v engender_v and_o corrupt_v even_o so_o also_o do_v general_a nature_n of_o brute_n beast_n and_o plant_n perpetuallie_o endure_v although_o their_o individua_fw-la their_o individua_fw-la particular_n be_v renew_v and_o perish_v if_o thou_o demand_v what_o utility_n these_o thing_n shall_v have_v if_o they_o remain_v still_o i_o answer_v they_o shall_v have_v the_o self-same_a that_o thou_o can_v attribute_v unto_o the_o element_n for_o even_o as_o then_o we_o shall_v have_v no_o need_n of_o the_o element_n no_o more_o shall_v we_o have_v need_n of_o brute_n beast_n or_o plant_n or_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n in_o my_o judgement_n side_n probable_a reason_n on_o both_o side_n it_o have_v be_v a_o better_a reason_n for_o they_o to_o have_v say_v that_o therefore_o they_o think_v that_o other_o thing_n shall_v not_o endure_v because_o the_o scripture_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o their_o preservation_n albeit_o i_o see_v also_o that_o this_o reason_n be_v not_o of_o necessity_n for_o though_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o make_v mention_n of_o these_o creature_n apart_o by_o themselves_o and_o expressedlie_o yet_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o it_o have_v general_o signify_v that_o creature_n shall_v be_v renew_v neither_o do_v they_o ever_o except_v any_o thing_n further_o if_o we_o shall_v contend_v by_o reason_n that_o the_o sun_n as_o they_o say_v shall_v therefore_o be_v adorn_v with_o great_a abundance_n of_o light_n because_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o after_o a_o sort_n it_o shall_v receive_v a_o reward_n of_o his_o labour_n so_o may_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o creature_n also_o say_v that_o they_o have_v with_o no_o less_o labour_n and_o fidelity_n do_v service_n unto_o man_n than_o the_o sun_n have_v add_v moreover_o that_o there_o be_v no_o less_o inclination_n and_o natural_a desire_n in_o other_o creature_n to_o preserve_v themselves_o than_o be_v in_o the_o sun_n moon_n heaven_n and_o earth_n wherefore_o if_o the_o one_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v frustrate_v of_o their_o desire_n no_o more_o ought_v the_o other_o 24_o these_o thing_n may_v probable_o be_v say_v on_o both_o side_n 20_o eph._n 3_o 15._o col._n 1_o 20_o and_o paul_n unto_o the_o ephesian_n and_o colossian_n say_v that_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v restore_v by_o christ_n whether_o they_o be_v thing_n in_o heaven_n or_o thing_n in_o earth_n but_o this_o also_o in_o very_a deed_n make_v not_o a_o argument_n of_o necessity_n for_o thing_n
whatsoever_o else_o rather_o than_o that_o which_o behoove_v undoubted_o godly_a king_n erect_v school_n &_o college_n that_o in_o they_o young_a man_n shall_v be_v bring_v up_o to_o good_a learning_n and_o godliness_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o cathedral_n church_n but_o a_o school_n be_v join_v thereunto_o at_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n do_v pantenus_n clemens_n origen_n and_o other_o most_o learned_a man_n public_o profess_v at_o this_o day_n also_o among_o the_o canoniste_n a_o place_n be_v assign_v for_o the_o schoolmaster_n but_o he_o do_v nothing_o less_o than_o teach_v the_o youth_n and_o hereof_o come_v so_o great_a darkness_n every_o where_n in_o the_o pope_n government_n 5._o 1._o sam._n 10._o 5._o either_o because_o the_o youth_n be_v not_o teach_v at_o all_o or_o else_o because_o they_o be_v teach_v wicked_a thing_n samuel_n be_v precedent_n of_o this_o college_n before_o his_o time_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o any_o such_o fellowship_n of_o prophet_n of_o take_v a_o spiritual_a charge_n look_v the_o oration_n that_o begin_v those_o cause_n 4._o in_o jud._n 4._o v._n 4._o 10_o but_o when_o as_o god_n choose_v deborah_n unto_o the_o ministry_n of_o judge_v be_v weak_a in_o sex_n he_o straight_o way_n make_v she_o very_o famous_a and_o honourable_a through_o the_o gift_n of_o prophesy_v by_o which_o grace_n and_o perhaps_o many_o other_o miracle_n more_o she_o be_v constitute_v by_o god_n and_o confirm_v by_o miracle_n as_o a_o woman_n choose_v to_o so_o great_a a_o office_n neither_o be_v only_o this_o woman_n endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o pprophecy_n for_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o read_v of_o other_o woman_n also_o which_o be_v in_o such_o sort_n instruct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n marry_o the_o sister_n of_o moses_n 36._o exod._n 15._o 20._o 1._o sam._n 2._o 1._o 2._o king_n 22._o 14._o luke_n 1._o v._o 42._o &_o 46._o &_o 2._o 36._o hanna_n the_o mother_n of_o samuel_n holda_n in_o the_o time_n of_o josias_n the_o king_n be_v prophetess_n and_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o speak_v nothing_o of_o marie_n the_o virgin_n of_o elizabeth_n the_o mother_n of_o john_n and_o of_o anna_n the_o daughter_n of_o phanuel_n the_o daughter_n of_o philip_n the_o deacon_n people_n that_o woman_n prophet_n do_v open_o teach_v the_o people_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v prophetess_n neither_o think_v i_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v deny_v that_o some_o of_o those_o woman_n endue_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o pprophecy_n do_v open_o teach_v the_o people_n in_o declare_v of_o those_o thing_n unto_o they_o which_o have_v be_v show_v they_o of_o god_n see_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v not_o therefore_o give_v that_o they_o shall_v lie_v hide_v but_o to_o the_o intent_n they_o shall_v further_o the_o common_a edify_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o hereby_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o what_o god_n do_v by_o some_o peculiar_a privilege_n we_o shall_v forthwith_o draw_v it_o into_o a_o example_n unto_o we_o because_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o be_v bind_v unto_o a_o ordinary_a law_n church_n 1._o tim._n 2._o 12._o 1._o cor._n 14._o 34._o why_o woman_n be_v command_v to_o be_v silent_a in_o the_o church_n whereby_o both_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n he_o command_v that_o a_o woman_n shall_v keep_v silence_n in_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o silence_n command_v he_o assign_v cause_n namely_o for_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o their_o husband_n but_o the_o office_n of_o a_o teacher_n do_v declare_v a_o certain_a authority_n over_o those_o which_o be_v teach_v which_o must_v not_o be_v attribute_v unto_o a_o woman_n over_o man_n for_o she_o be_v make_v for_o man_n who_o to_o obey_v she_o ought_v always_o to_o have_v a_o respect_n which_o thing_n be_v also_o appoint_v she_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o say_v unto_o the_o woman_n after_o sin_n be_v commit_v 16._o gen._n 3._o 16._o thy_o disposition_n shall_v be_v towards_o thy_o husband_n further_o the_o apostle_n derive_v a_o reason_n from_o the_o first_o fault_n 14._o 1._o tim._n 2._o 14._o wherein_o he_o say_v that_o eve_n be_v seduce_v and_o not_o adam_n so_o as_o if_o woman_n shall_v ordinary_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o holy_a ministry_n in_o the_o church_n man_n may_v easy_o suspect_v that_o the_o devil_n by_o his_o accustom_a instrument_n will_v deceive_v the_o people_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n they_o will_v the_o less_o esteem_v the_o ecclesiastical_a function_n if_o it_o shall_v be_v commit_v unto_o woman_n wherefore_o by_o the_o ordinary_a right_n and_o by_o the_o apostolical_a rule_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v appoint_v unto_o man_n howbeit_o if_o god_n do_v otherwise_o sometime_o yet_o can_v he_o not_o be_v just_o accuse_v for_o so_o much_o as_o all_o law_n be_v in_o his_o power_n if_o then_o sometime_o he_o send_v a_o prophetisse_n and_o adorn_v she_o with_o heavenly_a gift_n the_o same_o woman_n speak_v in_o the_o church_n must_v undoubted_o be_v hearken_v unto_o but_o yet_o so_o as_o her_o state_n be_v not_o forget_v therefore_o the_o two_o testimony_n of_o paul_n reconcile_v two_o place_n of_o paul_n be_v reconcile_v which_o seem_v to_o be_v repugnant_a one_o to_o another_o may_v easy_o be_v reconcile_v in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n he_o write_v that_o a_o woman_n ought_v to_o be_v silent_a in_o the_o church_n which_o toward_o the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 5._o 1._o cor._n 11._o 5._o he_o most_o manifest_o confirm_v howbeit_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n he_o command_v that_o a_o man_n prophesy_v or_o pray_v shall_v have_v his_o head_n uncover_v but_o the_o woman_n while_o the_o prophesi_v shall_v have_v it_o cover_v whereby_o doubtless_o he_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o woman_n both_o to_o speak_v and_o also_o to_o prophesy_v in_o the_o church_n for_o it_o will_v not_o seem_v that_o so_o do_v she_o shall_v have_v be_v command_v to_o cover_v her_o head_n if_o she_o be_v utter_o to_o keep_v silence_n in_o the_o holy_a assembly_n after_o this_o sort_n the_o matter_n must_v be_v expound_v namely_o that_o the_o precept_n of_o silence_n be_v a_o general_a precept_n head_n why_o the_o woman_n that_o prophesy_v be_v command_v to_o be_v cover_v on_o their_o head_n but_o the_o other_o which_o be_v for_o cover_v of_o the_o head_n when_o they_o pray_v or_o prophesy_v pertain_v only_o to_o those_o which_o be_v prophetess_n they_o very_o be_v not_o forbid_v to_o prophesy_v for_o the_o common_a edify_n of_o the_o church_n but_o lest_o they_o forget_v the_o property_n of_o their_o own_o state_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o extraordinary_a office_n commit_v unto_o they_o shall_v wax_v proud_a they_o be_v command_v to_o have_v their_o head_n cover_v whereby_o they_o may_v understand_v that_o they_o have_v yet_o the_o power_n of_o man_n above_o they_o moreover_o where_o in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n to_o titus_n 3._o tit._n 2._o 3._o it_o be_v command_v that_o the_o elder_a woman_n shall_v admonish_v the_o young_a woman_n of_o temperance_n &_o that_o they_o shall_v love_v their_o husband_n and_o child_n and_o shall_v likewise_o be_v diligent_a housewife_n in_o their_o family_n this_o must_v not_o be_v understand_v as_o touch_v public_a doctrine_n or_o ecclesiastical_a sermon_n but_o of_o private_a exhortation_n which_o be_v meet_v to_o be_v use_v by_o the_o elder_a sort_n unto_o the_o young_a 12_o in_o rom._n 12_o 11_o when_o paul_n say_v in_o the_o twelve_o to_o the_o roman_n he_o that_o distribute_v let_v he_o do_v it_o with_o sincerity_n deacon_n the_o office_n of_o deacon_n he_o touch_v the_o office_n of_o deacon_n as_o they_o be_v at_o that_o time_n and_o aught_o also_o to_o be_v in_o our_o time_n their_o office_n be_v to_o distribute_v to_o the_o poor_a the_o alm_n and_o oblation_n of_o the_o faithful_a let_v they_o do_v their_o office_n say_v he_o with_o simplicity_n let_v they_o withhold_v nothing_o by_o craft_n and_o ill_a practice_n for_o naughty_a and_o deceitful_a man_n when_o they_o have_v deal_v in_o public_a receipt_n do_v nothing_o sincere_o but_o use_v wonder_a guile_n and_o subtlety_n these_o thing_n will_v paul_n have_v to_o be_v remove_v from_o this_o kind_n of_o ministry_n other_o think_v that_o in_o give_v with_o simplicity_n he_o mean_v without_o any_o respect_n unto_o worldly_a praise_n which_o some_o seek_v for_o in_o the_o bestow_n of_o other_o man_n alm_n but_o the_o first_o interpretation_n in_o my_o judgement_n seem_v most_o fit_a and_o whereas_o he_o add_v he_o that_o rule_v let_v he_o do_v it_o with_o carefulness_n although_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o there_o be_v many_o
you_o be_v dead_a with_o christ_n why_o be_v you_o yet_o as_o it_o be_v live_v hold_v with_o decree_n and_o unto_o the_o galathian_o 1._o gal._n 5._o 1._o stand_v you_o in_o the_o same_o liberty_n wherein_o christ_n have_v deliver_v you_o and_o to_o the_o colossian_n he_o utter_o condemn_v all_o voluntary_a worshippings_fw-mi 22._o col._n 2._o 22._o these_o thing_n in_o deed_n have_v a_o show_n of_o holiness_n and_o wisdom_n but_o that_o show_n stand_v in_o superstition_n in_o humility_n in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v neglect_v of_o the_o body_n and_o in_o the_o revelation_n of_o angel_n but_o in_o very_a deed_n they_o be_v rebuke_v 9_o matt._n 15._o 9_o as_o christ_n say_v in_o matthew_n but_o now_o if_o these_o thing_n be_v neither_o necessary_a nor_o yet_o belong_v to_o the_o worship_v of_o god_n they_o may_v be_v change_v neither_o be_v it_o necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v after_o one_o sort_n in_o all_o church_n in_o these_o thing_n say_v jerom_o let_v every_o province_n abound_v in_o his_o own_o sense_n and_o ambrose_n as_o he_o be_v cite_v by_o augustine_n to_o januarius_n if_o you_o will_v not_o err_v do_v you_o say_v he_o as_o i_o be_o wont_v for_o i_o unto_o what_o church_n soever_o i_o come_v do_v apply_v myself_o unto_o the_o ceremony_n thereof_o neither_o undoubted_o ought_v the_o church_n be_v deprive_v of_o that_o liberty_n which_o christ_n will_v have_v evermore_o remain_v whole_a unto_o it_o yet_o do_v i_o not_o therefore_o speak_v these_o thing_n to_o the_o intent_n i_o will_v have_v ceremony_n to_o be_v every_o day_n alter_v in_o the_o church_n for_o nothing_o must_v either_o be_v change_v or_o abolish_v without_o great_a counsel_n and_o grave_a deliberation_n further_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n lest_o these_o ceremony_n do_v grow_v to_o a_o exceed_a number_n and_o so_o do_v overturn_v all_o thing_n augustine_n in_o his_o 119._o epistle_n unto_o jannarius_n say_v that_o in_o his_o time_n the_o number_n of_o observation_n be_v so_o great_a as_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o jew_n seem_v much_o more_o tolerable_a than_o do_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o christian_n all_o thing_n say_v he_o be_v full_o of_o presumption_n so_o as_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o sin_n more_o grievous_o which_o during_o their_o octave_n tread_v on_o the_o ground_n with_o his_o bare_a foot_n than_o he_o that_o drink_v drink_v and_o what_o do_v these_o thing_n profit_v in_o the_o end_n very_o they_o will_v make_v ill_a man_n nothing_o the_o better_a for_o as_o we_o have_v say_v they_o be_v only_o effectual_a unto_o good_a order_n for_o so_o much_o as_o many_o of_o these_o kind_n of_o thing_n be_v invent_v for_o filthiness_n and_o gain_v sake_n for_o by_o these_o art_n the_o papist_n kitching_n be_v make_v fat_a it_o also_o happen_v oftentimes_o that_o by_o these_o small_a matter_n man_n be_v lead_v away_o from_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n this_o do_v christ_n reprove_v in_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr 3._o matt._n 15._o 3._o that_o for_o their_o tradition_n they_o contemn_v the_o precept_n of_o god_n wherefore_o such_o invention_n and_o decree_n of_o man_n must_v be_v take_v away_o so_o often_o as_o they_o begin_v to_o hinder_v holiness_n to_o godward_o for_o so_o ezechias_n take_v away_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n when_o the_o people_n have_v once_o begin_v to_o honour_v it_o for_o god_n although_o it_o be_v erect_v by_o moses_n 4_o 2._o king_n 18_o 4_o ceremony_n therefore_o be_v to_o be_v suffer_v so_o long_o as_o they_o serve_v to_o good_a order_n and_o to_o any_o use_n of_o the_o church_n but_o where_o as_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o use_n of_o they_o they_o must_v without_o all_o doubt_n be_v take_v away_o 5_o now_o let_v we_o see_v as_o touch_v the_o three_o part_n which_o fit_a the_o best_a our_o purpose_n be_v of_o what_o force_n the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n be_v what_o force_n such_o decree_n shall_v have_v for_o the_o bind_n of_o conscience_n and_o what_o difference_n there_o be_v between_o these_o thing_n and_o civil_a decree_n first_o of_o all_o those_o thing_n bind_v not_o if_o contempt_n and_o offence_n be_v renew_v and_o that_o we_o do_v not_o either_o through_o pride_n and_o of_o set_a purpose_n abolish_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v well_o institute_v or_o else_o trouble_v the_o common_a quiet_n of_o the_o church_n these_o thing_n be_v observe_v the_o conscience_n be_v nothing_o bind_v 29._o act._n 15._o 29._o for_o example_n sake_n the_o apostle_n decree_v that_o the_o gentiles_n convert_v unto_o christ_n shall_v abstain_v from_o strangle_v from_o blood_n and_o from_o the_o thing_n dedicate_v unto_o idol_n wherein_o they_o have_v respect_n unto_o nothing_o else_o but_o the_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o church_n for_o otherwise_o the_o jew_n can_v never_o have_v agree_v with_o the_o ethnic_n if_o any_o man_n have_v eat_v those_o thing_n preserve_v the_o common_a quiet_n of_o the_o church_n he_o have_v nothing_o at_o all_o sin_v against_o conscience_n for_o otherwise_o peter_n say_v 10_o ibid._n ver_fw-la 10_o why_o tempt_v you_o god_n in_o put_v on_o a_o yoke_n &_o c_o and_o paul_n unto_o the_o colossian_n 16._o col._n 2._o 16._o let_v no_o man_n judge_v you_o in_o meat_n and_o drink_n and_o if_o so_o be_v we_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v judge_v of_o our_o brother_n much_o less_o ought_v we_o to_o be_v judge_v of_o ourselves_o and_o christ_n say_v 11._o mat._n 15._o 11._o that_o which_o go_v in_o at_o the_o mouth_n defile_v not_o the_o man_n and_o so_o he_o defend_v his_o disciple_n when_o they_o have_v eat_v with_o unwashed_a hand_n and_o when_o as_o they_o iourney_v they_o rub_v out_o the_o ear_n of_o corn_n in_o their_o hand_n 25._o 1._o cor._n 10._o 25._o the_o same_o do_v paul_n prove_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n say_v whatsoever_o shall_v be_v set_v before_o you_o that_o eat_v without_o ask_v any_o question_n but_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v declare_v unto_o thou_o that_o that_o meat_n be_v dedicate_v to_o a_o idol_n eat_v not_o for_o conscience_n sake_n not_o thy_o own_o conscience_n but_o his_o that_o show_v it_o unto_o thou_o 5._o wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o law_n politic_a rom._n 13._o 5._o but_o a_o far_a other_o there_o be_v in_o civil_a precept_n for_o we_o be_v command_v to_o obey_v not_o only_o because_o of_o wrath_n but_o also_o for_o conscience_n sake_n the_o conscience_n i_o mean_v not_o of_o a_o other_o man_n but_o our_o own_o therefore_o great_a be_v the_o difference_n between_o ecclesiastical_a decree_n and_o political_a so_o than_o it_o be_v of_o necessity_n that_o those_o thing_n do_v not_o bind_v the_o conscience_n for_o in_o ecclesiastical_a thing_n good_a order_n must_v be_v regard_v but_o in_o civil_a thing_n we_o must_v obey_v although_o thou_o perceive_v not_o that_o good_a order_n 15_o in_o 1._o sam._n 15._o 22._o matt._n 9_o 13._o osee_n 6._o 7._o in_o 1._o sa._n 15_o 6_o in_o fine_a we_o must_v always_o hold_v that_o common_a rule_n to_o obey_v be_v better_a than_o sacrifice_n and_o to_o harken_v be_v better_a than_o the_o fat_a of_o ram_n samuel_n dispute_v of_o sacrifice_n and_o obedience_n use_v a_o double_a comparison_n for_o first_o he_o say_v that_o those_o thing_n be_v not_o of_o like_a estimation_n further_o he_o say_v that_o obedience_n be_v better_a than_o all_o sacrifice_n ben_n gerson_n show_v this_o reason_n thereof_o because_o sacrifice_n say_v he_o be_v invent_v to_o take_v away_o sin_n sacrifice_n why_o obedience_n be_v better_a than_o sacrifice_n but_o obedience_n make_v a_o man_n not_o to_o sin_v at_o all_o and_o much_o better_a be_v that_o which_o cause_v we_o not_o to_o sin_n than_o which_o purge_v sin_n commit_v an_o other_o reason_n be_v because_o that_o must_v needs_o be_v less_o which_o be_v sometime_o refuse_v by_o god_n than_o that_o which_o be_v always_o require_v but_o sacrifice_n be_v often_o reject_v of_o god_n obedience_n never_o wherefore_o this_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o better_a for_o jeremie_n say_v in_o the_o 7._o 22._o jer._n 7._o 22._o chapter_n when_o i_o bring_v your_o father_n out_o of_o egypt_n i_o speak_v not_o a_o word_n unto_o they_o of_o sacrifice_n but_o only_o that_o you_o shall_v obey_v my_o word_n 11._o esa_n 1._o 11._o and_o esaie_n why_o offer_v you_o say_v he_o so_o many_o sacrifice_n unto_o i_o i_o be_o full_a of_o burn_a offering_n and_o of_o the_o fatness_n of_o feed_a beast_n and_o david_n in_o the_o 50._o psalm_n i_o will_v take_v no_o calf_n out_o of_o thy_o stall_n 10._o psal_n 50._o 10._o nor_o he_o goat_n out_o of_o thy_o flock_n for_o all_o the_o wild_a beast_n of_o the_o forest_n be_v i_o and_o so_o be_v the_o cattle_n upon_o a_o a_o thousand_o hill_n i_o know_v all_o the_o fowl_n of_o the_o mountain_n and_o
christ_n and_o his_o disciple_n 21._o john_n 9_o 21._o and_o as_o many_o as_o follow_v he_o to_o be_v cast_v forth_o of_o the_o synagogue_n but_o excommunication_n of_o this_o kind_n innocent_n unjust_a excommunication_n be_v no_o harm_n to_o innocent_n see_v they_o be_v wicked_a and_o unwise_a be_v not_o prejudicial_a unto_o the_o godly_a and_o innocent_a but_o they_o do_v excéedinglie_o hurt_v the_o minister_n and_o executor_n of_o they_o who_o in_o do_v perverslie_o do_v harm_n unto_o god_n to_o christ_n to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o themselves_o and_o at_o length_n so_o far_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v they_o murder_v the_o little_a flock_n of_o christ_n for_o although_o god_n be_v present_a with_o he_o that_o be_v uniustlie_o excommunicate_v yet_o the_o author_n of_o this_o unrighteousness_n for_o their_o part_n drive_v he_o out_o of_o the_o church_n be_v oppress_v with_o slander_n and_o cast_v he_o forth_o to_o be_v devour_v of_o wolf_n for_o who_o christ_n die_v but_o against_o the_o cruelty_n of_o these_o man_n christ_n comfort_v we_o when_o he_o say_v fear_v you_o not_o they_o which_o kill_v the_o body_n 28_o mat._n 10._o 28_o see_v they_o can_v kill_v the_o soul_n let_v these_o man_n excommunicate_a as_o much_o as_o they_o will_v they_o shall_v not_o separate_v we_o from_o god_n from_o christ_n and_o from_o the_o church_n a_o certain_a foolish_a suffragan_n example_n a_o example_n disgrade_v as_o they_o speak_v a_o certain_a priest_n after_o a_o while_n to_o be_v bind_v because_o he_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o say_v that_o he_o do_v separate_v he_o from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n militant_a and_o triumphant_a unto_o who_o that_o prudent_a and_o constant_a martyr_n answer_v what_o show_v thou_o i_o of_o the_o triumphant_a and_o militant_a church_n of_o christ_n no_o creature_n can_v pluck_v i_o from_o thence_o 37._o rom._n 8._o 37._o and_o thou_o have_v the_o room_n of_o a_o bishop_n in_o vain_a attempt_v to_o cut_v i_o off_o from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 18_o last_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v hard_a by_o these_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v speak_v to_o see_v how_o we_o ought_v to_o behave_v ourselves_o towards_o he_o excommunicate_a how_o we_o ought_v to_o behave_v ourselves_o towards_o a_o excommunicate_a which_o be_v already_o excommunicate_a the_o familiar_a conversation_n which_o be_v do_v for_o affection_n sake_n must_v be_v withdraw_v from_o he_o yet_o so_o as_o child_n wife_n and_o subject_n be_v not_o exempt_v from_o their_o due_a obedience_n towards_o the_o magistrate_n lest_o all_o thing_n be_v confound_v but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v heed_n be_v take_v least_o in_o this_o conversation_n they_o give_v assent_v unto_o the_o same_o crime_n but_o as_o to_o other_o let_v the_o excommunicate_n be_v avoid_v let_v not_o meat_n be_v eat_v with_o they_o let_v it_o not_o be_v say_v unto_o they_o god_n speed_n but_o let_v they_o be_v account_v as_o ethnic_n and_o publican_n yet_o must_v we_o not_o cease_v from_o admonish_v teach_v and_o reprove_v neither_o from_o give_v meat_n and_o drink_n if_o necessity_n shall_v urge_v because_o excommunication_n can_v no_o further_o be_v extend_v than_o charity_n and_o other_o holy_a commandment_n of_o god_n will_v suffer_v we_o need_v not_o to_o fear_v the_o hatred_n of_o he_o that_o be_v excommunicate_a for_o if_o he_o will_v justly_o weigh_v what_o be_v do_v towards_o he_o he_o shall_v perceive_v that_o the_o faithful_a be_v stir_v up_o against_o he_o not_o through_o envy_n but_o through_o charity_n theodosius_n theodosius_n theodosius_n be_v correct_v by_o ambrose_n cease_v not_o to_o love_v he_o to_o honour_v he_o and_o to_o commend_v he_o and_o again_o they_o which_o be_v excommunicate_a ought_v not_o for_o that_o cause_n to_o step_v back_o from_o the_o gospel_n or_o to_o desist_v from_o the_o faith_n thereof_o further_o when_o they_o shall_v repent_v he_o which_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v reconcile_v as_o paul_n exhort_v in_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 8._o 1._o cor._n 2._o 8._o which_o thing_n shall_v be_v do_v mild_o with_o great_a good_a will_n and_o charity_n these_o thing_n i_o mean_v to_o say_v as_o touch_v excommunication_n be_v always_o ready_a to_o hear_v better_a matter_n for_o i_o perceive_v that_o many_o thing_n herein_o be_v obscure_a which_o do_v oftentimes_o trouble_v the_o weak_a and_o for_o this_o be_o i_o very_o sorry_a that_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o i_o have_v speak_v of_o utopia_n and_o the_o common_a weal_n of_o plato_n the_o which_o although_o of_o many_o they_o be_v praise_v as_o goodly_a thing_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o where_o to_o be_v find_v of_o comeliness_n and_o order_n in_o the_o church_n end_n in_o 1._o co._n 14_o at_o the_o end_n 19_o but_o paul_n in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o 14._o chapter_n add_v a_o very_a excellent_a conclusion_n to_o wit_n that_o all_o thing_n be_v do_v decent_o and_o in_o order_n but_o that_o particle_n decent_o must_v be_v right_o understand_v lest_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o this_o comeliness_n consist_v in_o instrument_n of_o silk_n in_o vessel_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n in_o cup_n set_v with_o precious_a stone_n in_o the_o ring_n of_o bell_n in_o sweet_a perfume_n &_o in_o the_o shine_v of_o light_n they_o which_o boast_v of_o these_o thing_n as_o decent_a fall_v into_o the_o false_a argument_n which_o aristotle_n call_v a_o secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la ad_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la argument_n a_o false_a argument_n that_o be_v from_o that_o which_o be_v in_o some_o respect_n to_o that_o which_o be_v absolute_a comely_a we_o grant_v these_o thing_n to_o be_v howbeit_o unto_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o body_n unto_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o world_n which_o thing_n we_o must_v rather_o deny_v than_o follow_v god_n what_o comeliness_n be_v require_v in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n the_o comeliness_n which_o in_o these_o thing_n be_v require_v consist_v in_o mortification_n holiness_n modesty_n contempt_n of_o the_o world_n and_o especial_o in_o edification_n let_v it_o not_o be_v object_v unto_o we_o 25._o exod._n 25._o that_o god_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n require_v of_o we_o these_o outward_a ornament_n why_o the_o ornament_n of_o gold_n &_o silver_n etc._n etc._n be_v convenient_a for_o the_o old_a law_n &_o why_o as_o gold_n silver_n precious_a stone_n etc._n etc._n for_o these_o thing_n be_v convenient_a for_o that_o time_n and_o age_n when_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v unskilful_a and_o be_v detain_v as_o infant_n under_o the_o rudiment_n of_o this_o world_n now_o have_v christ_n bring_v a_o more_o perfect_a state_n therefore_o in_o his_o church_n we_o must_v retain_v those_o thing_n which_o of_o themselves_o be_v decent_a not_o those_o which_o for_o some_o certain_a time_n be_v meet_v for_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v new_o spring_v up_o also_o he_o will_v that_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v do_v in_o order_n that_o be_v without_o confusion_n for_o it_o be_v order_n where_o some_o thing_n do_v fit_o go_v before_o and_o follow_v one_o another_o augustine_n a_o definition_n of_o order_n by_o augustine_n for_o augustine_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la define_v it_o order_n be_v a_o dispose_n of_o thing_n that_o be_v like_a and_o unlike_a give_v to_o every_o one_o their_o proper_a place_n in_o a_o church_n let_v there_o be_v doctor_n disciple_n people_n a_o pastor_n elder_n and_o in_o rite_n let_v some_o thing_n be_v set_v before_o and_o other_o thing_n follow_v after_o so_o that_o in_o every_o place_n nothing_o be_v do_v unorderly_o or_o confusedlie_o of_o temple_n or_o church_n 20_o david_n although_o he_o be_v commend_v to_o be_v a_o acceptable_a and_o godly_a king_n 16._o in_o 1._o cor._n 3_o verse_n 16._o yet_o be_v he_o forbid_v by_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o build_v a_o temple_n unto_o he_o because_o he_o be_v exercise_v in_o warlike_a affair_n and_o have_v put_v his_o hand_n to_o the_o blood_n and_o slaughter_n of_o many_o man_n let_v we_o further_o consider_v that_o god_n show_v marvelous_a vengeance_n upon_o the_o philistian_o 5._o 1._o sam._n 5._o in_o vex_v they_o with_o most_o foul_a disease_n for_o that_o they_o take_v away_o the_o arcke_n of_o the_o covenant_n neither_o do_v it_o well_o happen_v unto_o the_o chaldean_n at_o the_o length_n for_o that_o they_o burn_v the_o temple_n and_o take_v away_o the_o holy_a vessel_n into_o captivity_n forsomuch_o as_o their_o monarchy_n not_o long_o after_o be_v overthrow_v the_o macedonian_n also_o who_o most_o contemptuouslie_o violate_v the_o temple_n repair_v have_v a_o evil_a end_n and_o that_o we_o pass_v not_o over_o the_o holy_a house_n of_o the_o christian_n augustine_n augustine_n augustine_n give_v warning_n who_o declare_v in_o the_o first_o book_n
east-church_n the_o church_n of_o asia_n and_o the_o greek_a church_n in_o respect_n forsooth_o that_o they_o will_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o seat_n or_o rather_o the_o tyranny_n of_o rome_n seventhlie_a they_o be_v not_o content_a with_o excommunication_n and_o execration_n by_o which_o they_o curse_v we_o be_v faithful_a man_n and_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n godly_a the_o papist_n persecute_v the_o godly_a do_v most_o cruel_o persecute_v &_o destroy_v we_o with_o sword_n violence_n prison_n banishment_n confiscation_n of_o good_n and_o final_o with_o flame_n and_o fire_n eightlie_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o godly_a man_n shall_v be_v conversant_a together_o with_o sinner_n reformation_n the_o papist_n admit_v no_o reformation_n so_o long_o as_o there_o be_v any_o hope_n of_o they_o remain_v and_o while_o they_o abide_v to_o hear_v those_o which_o warn_v they_o but_o these_o man_n have_v stop_v their_o ear_n like_o adder_n neither_o can_v they_o abide_v any_o word_n of_o man_n admonish_v they_o they_o have_v be_v cry_v upon_o of_o long_a time_n and_o they_o compel_v of_o force_n confess_v that_o many_o great_a error_n be_v creep_v in_o into_o the_o church_n yet_o do_v they_o not_o either_o show_n or_o amend_v any_o certain_a counsel_n have_v be_v hold_v namely_o of_o constance_n basill_n florence_n and_o trent_n welnéere_o within_o our_o age_n or_o the_o age_n of_o our_o father_n yet_o be_v there_o not_o correct_v in_o the_o church_n so_o much_o as_o one_o trifle_a thing_n or_o error_n or_o abuse_v so_o as_o they_o seem_v now_o past_a hope_n of_o salvation_n and_o experience_n teach_v that_o in_o live_v with_o they_o the_o truth_n be_v rather_o hide_v and_o weaken_v than_o that_o they_o be_v become_v the_o better_a wherefore_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o we_o depart_v from_o they_o for_o the_o apostle_n for_o the_o very_a same_o cause_n depart_v from_o the_o jew_n 46._o act._n 13._o 46._o see_v they_o cast_v away_o the_o word_n of_o god_n council_n the_o papist_n mislike_v of_o a_o christian_a council_n ninthlie_a many_o have_v hope_v and_o yet_o hold_v opinion_n that_o the_o only_a remedy_n which_o remain_v for_o the_o relief_n of_o the_o miserable_a state_n of_o thing_n be_v a_o general_a council_n which_o shall_v be_v free_o hold_v where_o the_o cause_n on_o both_o part_n may_v be_v discuss_v but_o they_o never_o abide_v themselves_o to_o be_v bring_v thereunto_o with_o grief_n they_o hear_v mention_v make_v of_o a_o council_n moreover_o lest_o they_o shall_v seem_v over_o wicked_a they_o permit_v a_o council_n after_o a_o sort_n but_o such_o a_o council_n as_o consist_v of_o they_o that_o conspire_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o see_v the_o ground_n and_o state_n of_o all_o depend_v whole_o upon_o the_o pope_n they_o will_v abide_v none_o there_o but_o such_o as_o be_v swear_v unto_o he_o 5_o tenthlie_a in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v three_o kind_n of_o thing_n church_n what_o and_o how_o many_o kind_n of_o thing_n be_v in_o the_o church_n for_o some_o be_v necessary_a other_o be_v free_a and_o othersome_a be_v wicked_a among_o thing_n necessary_a be_v appoint_v doctrine_n and_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n as_o also_o holy_a and_o honest_a life_n namely_o that_o man_n shall_v behave_v themselves_o godly_a modest_o and_o justly_o towards_o god_n themselves_o and_o their_o neighbour_n all_o which_o in_o very_a deed_n belong_v unto_o discipline_n this_o be_v so_o let_v we_o consider_v how_o these_o man_n behave_v themselves_o in_o all_o these_o thing_n doctrine_n out_o of_o all_o doubt_n they_o have_v corrupt_v for_o they_o teach_v that_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o faith_n only_o 19_o rom._n 1._o 16._o &_o 3._o 21._o &_o 5._o 1._o gal._n 2._o 19_o as_o the_o scripture_n do_v appoint_v but_o that_o we_o be_v also_o justify_v by_o work_n they_o preach_v worship_v of_o image_n and_o the_o adore_v of_o creature_n they_o defend_v invocation_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o such_o like_a thing_n which_o be_v mere_a corruption_n of_o heavenly_a doctrine_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n they_o have_v so_o deface_v by_o add_v too_o and_o mangle_v of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o they_o be_v now_o scarce_o know_v further_o as_o to_o manner_n and_o life_n they_o have_v so_o excéedinglie_o loose_v the_o reins_n of_o discipline_n as_o they_o call_v good_a 20._o esa_n 5._o 20._o evil_a and_o evil_a good_a and_o all_o thing_n be_v take_v hand_n over_o head_n and_o so_o great_a a_o confusion_n there_o be_v of_o thing_n as_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n perceive_v of_o justice_n and_o thing_n that_o be_v free_a now_o they_o suffer_v not_o to_o be_v free_a they_o have_v ordain_v a_o choice_n of_o meat_n 16._o col._n 2._o 16._o when_o as_o in_o meat_n and_o drink_v as_o testify_v the_o apostle_n none_o ought_v to_o judge_v us._n they_o observe_v day_n with_o great_a superstition_n also_o they_o suffer_v not_o fasting_n to_o be_v free_a but_o they_o will_v have_v appoint_v time_n as_o the_o year_n go_v about_o they_o have_v decree_v to_o fast_v upon_o fridaie_n and_o saturdaie_o in_o the_o time_n of_o lent_n in_o the_o vigil_n and_o imber_n day_n matrimony_n which_o among_o other_o thing_n be_v most_o free_a they_o have_v forbid_v to_o all_o the_o clergy_n also_o there_o be_v garment_n prescribe_v by_o they_o to_o be_v so_o ncecessarie_a as_o without_o they_o mass_n can_v be_v have_v they_o will_v not_o that_o leaven_a bread_n shall_v be_v consecrate_v but_o sweet_a or_o unleavened_a ceremony_n and_o rite_n they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v so_o common_a that_o all_o man_n may_v use_v they_o brief_o they_o have_v make_v thing_n that_o be_v free_a to_o be_v of_o necessity_n thing_n that_o be_v naught_o and_o corrupt_v they_o will_v not_o cut_v off_o they_o retain_v they_o obstinate_o and_o he_o that_o will_v admonish_v they_o thereof_o they_o gréevouslie_o pursue_v he_o 2._o whether_o the_o title_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v agreeable_a with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n look_v before_o cap._n 1._o act._n 2._o 6_o furthermore_o they_o will_v have_v none_o to_o be_v of_o their_o fellowship_n that_o profess_v not_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o they_o endeavour_v to_o make_v the_o universal_a church_n to_o be_v particular_a for_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v one_o certain_a church_n as_o be_v the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n milan_n and_o ephesus_n but_o the_o catholic_a be_v universal_a for_o it_o be_v there_o find_v wheresoever_o the_o beléever_n and_o true_a member_n of_o christ_n live_v well_o it_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o place_n &_o chair_n they_o straight_o way_n revolt_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n when_o the_o pope_n kingdom_n be_v erect_v by_o they_o for_o they_o which_o will_v not_o go_v under_o the_o yoke_n be_v by_o the_o romanistes_n expulse_v from_o the_o church_n they_o seek_v not_o that_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v large_o spread_v but_o that_o they_o may_v bear_v rule_n far_o and_o wide_o paul_n unto_o the_o roman_n write_v 5_o rom._n 12._o 5_o that_o we_o be_v one_o body_n in_o christ_n &_o member_n every_o one_o of_o a_o other_o but_o and_o if_o he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v one_o in_o christ_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v enough_o to_o profess_v christ_n donatist●…_n e●…ors_n of_o the_o donatist●…_n not_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o donatist_n be_v reproove_v by_o many_o of_o the_o father_n and_o especial_o by_o augustine_n because_o they_o have_v straiten_v the_o catholic_a church_n into_o a_o small_a corner_n of_o aphrica_n affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o where_o else_o to_o be_v find_v but_o do_v not_o the_o papist_n the_o very_a same_o when_o as_o they_o acknowledge_v none_o for_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o follow_v not_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o their_o head_n and_o prince_n let_v they_o prove_v if_o they_o can_v that_o the_o gospel_n spring_v up_o at_o rome_n it_o can_v be_v say_v for_o it_o come_v from_o jerusalem_n aswell_o unto_o the_o greek_n as_o latin_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o by_o the_o right_n of_o antiquity_n the_o first_o of_o all_o further_o it_o be_v gather_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v before_o the_o same_o and_o if_o it_o can_v then_o be_v without_o it_o what_o let_v be_v there_o but_o that_o now_o also_o it_o may_v be_v without_o it_o but_o if_o so_o be_v to_o speak_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o logician_n the_o roman_a church_n first_o of_o all_o and_o by_o itself_o have_v be_v the_o catholic_a church_n all_o church_n by_o it_o shall_v be_v name_v and_o shall_v be_v call_v and_o become_v catholic_a through_o she_o which_o how_o false_a it_o be_v i_o have_v already_o show_v in_o that_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n antioch_n and_o
devil_n and_o by_o boniface_n the_o three_o &_o bring_v into_o the_o church_n by_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n the_o author_n of_o their_o popedom_n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o behold_v those_o better_a sort_n of_o roman_a bishop_n may_v easy_o say_v of_o they_o that_o they_o be_v gospeller_n and_o we_o may_v show_v that_o our_o doctrine_n do_v very_o well_o agree_v with_o their_o faith_n and_o meaning_n and_o see_v there_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n ordain_v by_o we_o but_o that_o we_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o welspringe_n and_o principal_a point_n of_o sincere_a and_o apostolic_a doctrine_n we_o have_v and_o do_v hold_v fast_o a_o succession_n communion_n and_o fellowship_n with_o all_o those_o godly_a father_n and_o true_a faithful_a bishop_n occupy_v what_o they_o mean_v by_o this_o their_o succession_n &_o whether_o it_o suffice_v thereunto_o that_o the_o place_n by_o somebody_o be_v occupy_v 26_o beside_o forth_o let_v we_o demand_v of_o they_o what_o they_o understand_v by_o this_o their_o succession_n &_o whether_o they_o think_v that_o thereunto_o it_o be_v enough_o and_o enough_o again_o that_o one_o i_o know_v not_o who_o whosoever_o final_o he_o shall_v be_v shall_v be_v place_v in_o the_o seat_n of_o rome_n wherein_o very_a many_o godly_a man_n in_o time_n past_a have_v sit_v assure_o the_o place_n and_o chair_n do_v not_o sanctify_v man_n nor_o yet_o make_v they_o like_a unto_o their_o predecessor_n if_o carnal_a generation_n work_v not_o this_o much_o less_o shall_v it_o be_v do_v by_o the_o local_a mutation_n of_o the_o seat_n abraham_n beget_v of_o himself_o such_o posterity_n as_o christ_n call_v they_o not_o the_o child_n of_o abraham_n 44._o john_n 8._o 44._o but_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n even_o because_o they_o do_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n so_o as_o the_o succession_n be_v of_o no_o force_n to_o warrant_v the_o power_n of_o his_o popedom_n no_o man_n doubt_v but_o that_o out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n 1._o acts._n 15._o 1._o which_o otherwise_o be_v most_o holy_a there_o go_v false_a apostle_n who_o by_o their_o legal_a observation_n trouble_v every_o where_o the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n paul_n foretell_v the_o elder_n and_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n 30._o act._n 20._o 30._o that_o from_o among_o themselves_o wolf_n shall_v go_v out_o who_o will_v not_o spare_v the_o flock_n wherefore_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o fly_v from_o wolf_n undoubted_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o the_o wicked_a successor_n of_o the_o ephesian_a pastor_n in_o deed_n we_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o old_a time_n be_v good_a and_o holy_a but_o we_o say_v that_o a_o generation_n of_o viper_n do_v afterward_o succeed_v they_o 7._o matt._n 3._o 7._o so_o as_o it_o seem_v true_a which_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o proverb_n dangerous_a be_v the_o issue_n of_o nobility_n let_v they_o prove_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o true_a successor_n of_o the_o godly_a father_n who_o the_o faithful_a do_v just_o honour_v but_o they_o be_v not_o able_a see_v they_o have_v nothing_o common_a with_o they_o neither_o life_n nor_o labour_n nor_o preach_v nor_o doctrine_n in_o old_a time_n there_o be_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n plenty_n of_o light_n simplicity_n and_o knowledge_n now_o in_o the_o place_n of_o these_o thing_n reign_v darkness_n deceit_n and_o ignorance_n that_o church_n be_v high_o commend_v by_o the_o father_n who_o if_o they_o may_v now_o see_v it_o as_o it_o be_v they_o will_v exceed_o detest_v the_o same_o they_o give_v unto_o it_o at_o that_o time_n a_o certain_a pre-eminence_n i_o grant_v but_o it_o be_v a_o pre-eminence_n of_o order_n and_o not_o of_o power_n rome_n a_o pre-eminence_n of_o order_n not_o of_o power_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v meet_v when_o man_n meet_v together_o that_o in_o sit_v and_o declare_v of_o opinion_n a_o beginning_n shall_v be_v make_v by_o some_o one_o man_n i_o will_v not_o deny_v that_o that_o be_v sometime_o grant_v to_o the_o bishop_n but_o i_o can_v therefore_o grant_v that_o the_o roman_a bishop_n have_v pre-eminence_n over_o all_o bishop_n of_o christendom_n it_o be_v not_o unknowen_a that_o at_o rome_n there_o be_v some_o one_o man_n among_o the_o number_n of_o the_o senator_n which_o be_v call_v precedent_n of_o the_o senate_n because_o he_o sit_v in_o the_o first_o place_n and_o first_o of_o all_o declare_v his_o mind_n whenas_o nevertheless_o he_o have_v no_o power_n at_o all_o over_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o senator_n and_o among_o the_o elector_n of_o the_o empire_n some_o one_o be_v reckon_v chief_a yet_o be_v not_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o elector_n subject_a unto_o he_o athanasius_n of_o good_a right_n be_v chief_a of_o the_o synod_n of_o nice_a see_v he_o be_v patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n which_o have_v the_o second_o place_n next_o unto_o rome_n the_o patriarch_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o there_o although_o he_o send_v his_o legate_n and_o although_o athanasius_n be_v there_o the_o chief_a yet_o have_v he_o not_o power_n over_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v present_a the_o same_o thing_n be_v apparent_a in_o the_o trynitie_n where_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n as_o touch_v order_n be_v the_o first_o yet_o do_v it_o not_o thereof_o follow_v that_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v less_o than_o he_o or_o subject_a unto_o he_o as_o though_o they_o have_v not_o altogether_o as_o much_o divinity_n when_o as_o they_o have_v one_o essence_n and_o equal_a substance_n with_o he_o so_o then_o we_o may_v grant_v a_o primacy_n of_o order_n without_o a_o primacy_n of_o power_n which_o these_o man_n so_o great_o affect_v doubtless_o great_a be_v the_o impudency_n of_o they_o which_o tie_n christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n unto_o the_o chair_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o their_o pope_n whenas_o nevertheless_o they_o themselves_o will_v be_v tie_v within_o no_o bound_n and_o limit_n but_o usurp_v unto_o themselves_o a_o infinite_a liberty_n but_o we_o include_v the_o church_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o as_o the_o power_n thereof_o may_v be_v bind_v and_o comprehend_v in_o it_o as_o within_o certain_a limit_n 27_o howbeit_o to_o urge_v they_o somewhat_o further_o see_v they_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v the_o popedom_n of_o peter_n &_o that_o peter_n receive_v the_o same_o of_o the_o lord_n i_o will_v demand_v of_o they_o by_o what_o place_n or_o oracle_n of_o the_o scripture_n they_o can_v show_v that_o the_o popedom_n be_v give_v to_o peter_n peter_n whether_o this_o primacy_n be_v give_v unto_o peter_n i_o know_v that_o they_o thunder_n without_o measure_n and_o without_o end_n that_o christ_n say_v declare_v mat._n 16._o 18._o the_o word_n of_o christ_n thou_o be_v peter_n declare_v thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n but_o why_o do_v they_o not_o mark_v in_o that_o place_n that_o christ_n demand_v the_o question_n of_o all_o his_o apostle_n and_o not_o of_o peter_n alone_o by_o himself_o and_o that_o peter_n answer_v not_o only_o for_o himself_o but_o for_o all_o his_o fellow_n and_o therefore_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n not_o only_o belong_v unto_o he_o but_o also_o unto_o all_o the_o apostle_n wherefore_o origen_n a_o ancient_a writer_n say_v that_o the_o answer_n of_o christ_n not_o only_o belong_v unto_o peter_n and_o unto_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o also_o unto_o all_o they_o which_o follow_v the_o faith_n and_o confession_n of_o peter_n but_o what_o do_v i_o speak_v of_o origen_n christ_n himself_o elsewhere_o give_v unto_o all_o the_o apostle_n that_o which_o he_o seem_v in_o that_o place_n which_o they_o allege_v to_o have_v grant_v only_o unto_o peter_n he_o say_v as_o we_o have_v it_o in_o john_n 21._o joh._n 20._o 21._o even_o as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o i_o send_v you_o he_o breathe_v upon_o they_o and_o say_v receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o who_o sin_n you_o shall_v forgive_v they_o be_v forgive_v and_o who_o sin_n you_o shall_v retain_v they_o be_v retain_v in_o these_o word_n may_v be_v note_v that_o christ_n say_v i_o send_v you_o you_o i_o say_v not_o thou_o only_o or_o any_o other_o and_o that_o he_o give_v the_o key_n not_o to_o one_o or_o a_o other_o but_o unto_o all_o what_o then_o have_v peter_n above_o the_o rest_n they_o answer_v this_o above_o the_o other_o he_o have_v that_o he_o not_o only_o receive_v the_o power_n and_o key_n in_o general_a and_o in_o common_a together_o with_o other_o but_o also_o particular_o and_o several_o they_o that_o thus_o say_v seem_v not_o to_o have_v read_v very_o rest_n what_o peter_n have_v peculiar_a above_o the_o rest_n attentivelie_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o father_n have_v write_v of_o
and_o ceremony_n for_o as_o yet_o by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o moses_n they_o retain_v the_o sacrifice_n and_o ceremony_n and_o no_o man_n be_v constrain_v to_o give_v assent_n unto_o their_o false_a opinion_n but_o we_o be_v force_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o bishop_n to_o profess_v wicked_a doctrine_n neither_o can_v we_o by_o reason_n of_o they_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n &_o sincere_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n wherefore_o the_o consideration_n of_o both_o part_n be_v not_o alike_o neither_o can_v the_o example_n which_o they_o have_v bring_v be_v apply_v unto_o the_o present_a cause_n charity_n the_o crime_n of_o breach_n of_o charity_n they_o accuse_v we_o also_o that_o we_o have_v break_v charity_n with_o they_o neither_o do_v they_o remember_v that_o charity_n depend_v of_o faith_n and_o so_o see_v they_o retain_v not_o the_o same_o but_o have_v renounce_v it_o we_o can_v as_o touch_v ecclesiastical_a communion_n exercise_v brotherlie_a charity_n with_o they_o nevertheless_o we_o withdraw_v not_o christian_a love_n from_o they_o we_o continual_o wish_v and_o pray_v for_o their_o better_n namely_o that_o they_o may_v convert_v to_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o will_v at_o length_n correct_v and_o reform_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v mar_v &_o corrupt_v in_o the_o church_n further_o they_o disquiet_v we_o authority_n they_o object_n that_o we_o have_v depart_v of_o our_o own_o private_a authority_n for_o that_o we_o be_v depart_v not_o by_o public_a but_o by_o private_a authority_n neither_o consider_v they_o that_o god_n command_v every_o man_n to_o have_v a_o care_n of_o his_o own_o salvation_n what_o if_o other_o will_v not_o assent_v unto_o the_o truth_n and_o avoid_v the_o corruption_n of_o religion_n shall_v he_o that_o be_v bind_v to_o the_o study_n of_o god_n commandment_n &_o glory_n of_o christ_n neglect_v to_o do_v what_o he_o can_v and_o that_o which_o belong_v unto_o he_o moreover_o all_o man_n may_v see_v that_o our_o church_n be_v not_o without_o public_a authority_n see_v in_o they_o dwell_v both_o magistrate_n and_o prince_n neither_o do_v that_o subtlety_n which_o they_o often_o use_v hinder_v we_o in_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o part_n of_o this_o or_o that_o common_a weal_n or_o of_o this_o or_o that_o prince_n thus_o to_o do_v but_o that_o we_o must_v expect_v the_o consent_n of_o all_o christendom_n here_o do_v they_o excéedinglie_o err_v see_v god_n have_v command_v both_o every_o magistrate_n &_o every_o prince_n that_o they_o shall_v with_o singular_a diligence_n and_o watchful_a study_n be_v careful_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o they_o which_o be_v commit_v to_o their_o charge_n over_o and_o beside_o constance_n and_o constantine_n when_o they_o have_v embrace_v christ_n they_o do_v not_o expect_v a_o consent_n in_o christian_a religion_n of_o dioclesian_n maximianus_n licinius_n and_o of_o their_o emperor_n or_o caesar_n which_o be_v their_o fellow_n magistrate_n and_o have_v then_o the_o rule_n in_o their_o hand_n and_o ill_o come_v to_o tiberius_n for_o that_o he_o expect_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o senate_n in_o appoint_v of_o christ_n to_o be_v among_o the_o number_n of_o the_o god_n 34_o hitherto_o i_o have_v teach_v how_o just_a cause_n they_o be_v for_o the_o which_o we_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o papist_n and_o as_o i_o think_v have_v sufficient_o to_o the_o nature_n of_o this_o place_n answer_v their_o argument_n wherewith_o they_o rend_v and_o tear_v us._n so_o then_o remain_v that_o i_o shall_v descend_v to_o the_o other_o point_n of_o the_o treatise_n whereby_o i_o may_v declare_v that_o this_o be_v altogether_o necessary_a which_o shall_v three_o way_n appear_v first_o shall_v be_v show_v that_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o strong_a weapon_n unto_o godly_a mind_n do_v urge_v us._n further_o that_o it_o behoove_v we_o to_o fly_v lest_o our_o mind_n and_o conscience_n shall_v be_v pollute_v by_o the_o unpurenesse_n of_o doctrine_n and_o idolatry_n of_o our_o adversary_n and_o final_o lest_o we_o shall_v be_v in_o danger_n of_o the_o wrath_n and_o punishment_n of_o god_n which_o they_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o as_o to_o the_o first_o unfaithful_a commandment_n of_o god_n by_o which_o we_o be_v bid_v to_o depart_v from_o the_o company_n of_o the_o unfaithful_a there_o be_v very_o many_a and_o sundry_a precept_n of_o god_n extant_a in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o command_v this_o separation_n yet_o all_o those_o i_o will_v not_o recite_v because_o it_o will_v be_v over_o long_o but_o i_o will_v only_o repeat_v some_o christ_n say_v 15._o matt._n 7._o 15._o beware_v you_o of_o false_a prophet_n for_o although_o they_o be_v in_o sheep_n clothing_n they_o be_v raven_a wolf_n wherefore_o even_o as_o we_o shall_v fly_v from_o wolf_n so_o shall_v they_o be_v avoid_v which_o destroy_v soul_n by_o perverse_a doctrine_n and_o religion_n he_o in_o like_a manner_n as_o we_o read_v in_o john_n say_v 27._o joh._n 10._o 27._o my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n and_o follow_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o stranger_n therefore_o see_v the_o adversary_n have_v alienate_v themselves_o from_o christ_n we_o can_v cleave_v unto_o they_o unless_o we_o will_v cease_v to_o be_v the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n the_o same_o lord_n say_v 14_o mat._n 15._o 14_o if_o the_o blind_a follow_v the_o blind_a both_o of_o they_o shall_v fall_v into_o the_o ditch_n so_o as_o we_o have_v renounce_v the_o conduct_n of_o the_o papist_n lest_o we_o shall_v fall_v headlong_o together_o with_o they_o it_o be_v also_o write_v in_o john_n 48._o joh._n 12._o 48._o that_o many_o of_o the_o prince_n beléeve_v in_o christ_n who_o nevertheless_o because_o of_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr confess_v not_o christ_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v estrange_v from_o the_o synagogue_n because_o they_o rather_o seek_v the_o glory_n of_o man_n than_o of_o god_n wherefore_o if_o we_o have_v tarry_v with_o our_o adversary_n it_o have_v be_v also_o needful_a for_o we_o to_o have_v fear_v lest_o we_o shall_v have_v more_o hunt_v for_o glory_n and_o honour_n at_o their_o hand_n than_o to_o have_v entire_o love_v the_o sincere_a truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o have_v hear_v also_o that_o christ_n say_v 34_o mat._n 10._o 34_o i_o come_v not_o to_o send_v peace_n but_o a_o sword_n and_o to_o separate_v every_o faithful_a man_n from_o his_o own_o household_n which_o will_v hinder_v they_o from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n then_o see_v our_o enemy_n study_n &_o earnest_o endeavour_v nothing_o more_o than_o to_o turn_v we_o away_o from_o the_o truth_n receive_v we_o have_v upon_o just_a cause_n depart_v from_o they_o but_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathian_o the_o first_o chapter_n 8._o gal._n 1._o 8._o there_o appear_v a_o most_o plain_a testimony_n of_o this_o matter_n for_o there_o the_o apostle_n command_v that_o whosover_n shall_v bring_v another_o gospel_n than_o that_o which_o he_o have_v preach_v unto_o they_o he_o shall_v be_v accurse_v unto_o we_o &_o he_o go_v so_o far_o as_o he_o testify_v the_o very_a same_o thing_n of_o himself_o and_o he_o ascend_v from_o himself_o even_o to_o the_o angel_n nor_o do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o that_o place_n signify_v any_o other_o thing_n than_o a_o malediction_n or_o curse_n and_o who_o see_v not_o that_o it_o behoove_v every_o christian_a man_n special_o to_o beware_v that_o he_o run_v not_o into_o the_o curse_n of_o god_n and_o if_o so_o be_v that_o paul_n once_o wish_v to_o be_v accurse_v for_o the_o brethren_n 1._o rom._n 9_o 1._o he_o see_v that_o it_o redound_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n but_o in_o this_o cause_n by_o adjoin_v ourselves_o to_o the_o papist_n we_o shall_v become_v accurse_v together_o with_o they_o doubtless_o not_o unto_o their_o salvation_n but_o through_o our_o consent_n they_o will_v be_v more_o and_o more_o harden_v in_o their_o error_n whereof_o will_v proceed_v not_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n but_o rather_o the_o dishonour_n of_o his_o name_n augustine_n expound_v this_o place_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathian_o bring_v in_o a_o excellent_a exposition_n of_o the_o apostle_n meaning_n namely_o that_o the_o truth_n for_o itself_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v desire_v but_o not_o for_o their_o sake_n which_o set_v forth_o and_o publish_v the_o same_o for_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v admit_v for_o fear_n of_o they_o it_o may_v easy_o be_v that_o we_o will_v also_o receive_v lie_n for_o dread_n of_o they_o and_o we_o be_v not_o to_o think_v that_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o place_n rash_o use_v a_o repetition_n because_o the_o matter_n be_v both_o weighty_a and_o doubtful_a for_o even_o the_o adversary_n themselves_o will_v seem_v to_o
which_o come_v from_o they_o to_o our_o church_n and_o we_o reverence_v and_o read_v the_o self_n same_o holy_a book_n which_o they_o use_v 4_o antichrist_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n 2._o thes_n 2._o 4_o and_o by_o this_o reason_n we_o understand_v antichrist_n to_o fit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n because_o undoubted_o such_o a_o one_o he_o be_v in_o time_n past_a and_o so_o by_o many_o he_o be_v esteem_v and_o call_v &_o because_o he_o still_o retain_v as_o i_o have_v say_v some_o step_n of_o the_o church_n 42_o when_o they_o urge_v we_o as_o touch_v a_o visible_a church_n visible_a how_o the_o church_n be_v visible_a we_o answer_v that_o iustify_v man_n which_o true_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v bodily_a and_o visible_a albeit_o that_o those_o difference_n namely_o faith_n and_o hypocrisy_n by_o which_o the_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n differ_v from_o the_o wicked_a can_v be_v discern_v with_o eye_n whereof_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o part_n of_o the_o church_n can_v not_o in_o sense_n be_v discern_v from_o hypocrite_n but_o as_o to_o that_o precept_n bind_v mat._n 18._o 17._o how_o far_o forth_o that_o precept_n ●e●_n the_o church_n bind_v tell_v it_o the_o church_n we_o say_v that_o the_o same_o be_v in_o the_o order_n of_o affirmative_n which_o kind_n as_o the_o schoolman_n say_v do_v in_o deed_n bind_v man_n perpetual_o but_o not_o so_o as_o it_o require_v a_o execution_n in_o every_o place_n moment_n and_o case_n but_o then_o only_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v when_o it_o be_v possible_a and_o profitable_a they_o that_o be_v corrupt_v must_v be_v show_v to_o the_o church_n where_o and_o when_o there_o be_v a_o church_n which_o may_v he_o come_v unto_o even_o as_o we_o judge_v of_o baptism_n for_o it_o must_v be_v provide_v that_o every_o faithful_a man_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a may_v be_v baptize_v but_o when_o he_o can_v have_v a_o minister_n he_o be_v excuse_v when_o in_o the_o time_n of_o constantius_n wellnear_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o east_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o arrian_n unto_o what_o church_n shall_v it_o have_v be_v tell_v if_o thou_o answer_v unto_o the_o west_n church_n i_o reply_v that_o all_o man_n can_v not_o go_v thither_o neither_o will_v the_o tyrant_n have_v permit_v it_o i_o will_v add_v moreover_o that_o godly_a man_n so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v constrain_v to_o be_v in_o the_o popedom_n and_o can_v not_o have_v their_o assembly_n else_o where_o if_o they_o have_v think_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v profit_v any_o thing_n in_o correct_v of_o manner_n and_o in_o procure_v any_o way_n the_o glory_n of_o god_n or_o salvation_n of_o other_o they_o shall_v have_v show_v that_o which_o be_v requisite_a unto_o the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n for_o that_o time_n give_v if_o they_o may_v not_o do_v it_o among_o their_o own_o but_o now_o whenas_o it_o have_v seem_v good_a unto_o god_n to_o raise_v up_o famous_a man_n such_o as_o be_v luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la church_n the_o famous_a me●_n luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la raise_v by_o god_n to_o restore_v church_n who_o have_v plant_v innumerable_a church_n it_o be_v meet_v that_o godly_a man_n set_v aside_o the_o relic_n and_o remnante_n and_o slender_a step_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v repair_v thither_o where_o they_o may_v both_o deal_n and_o live_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o by_o that_o mean_v they_o shall_v continue_v in_o themselves_o through_o succession_n the_o faith_n &_o apostolical_a life_n conjoin_v themselves_o with_o their_o forefather_n which_o live_v right_o &_o sincere_o in_o the_o primative_a church_n 43_o nor_o will_v i_o have_v they_o ignorant_a that_o the_o further_o they_o have_v go_v the_o worse_a always_o be_v their_o deal_n become_v which_o we_o may_v gather_v not_o only_o by_o the_o former_a similitude_n of_o the_o decay_a building_n but_o also_o by_o a_o other_o namely_o of_o wine_n similitude_n a_o exce●…_n similitude_n the_o which_o at_o the_o first_o be_v of_o itself_o mighty_a and_o strong_a be_v praise_v of_o all_o man_n wherewith_o if_o there_o be_v any_o water_n mingle_v afterward_o the_o wine_n in_o deed_n remain_v still_o although_o more_o unperfect_a and_o the_o more_o that_o it_o be_v still_o delay_v the_o less_o it_o retain_v of_o the_o pureness_n of_o the_o wine_n and_o if_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o such_o a_o pass_n that_o in_o the_o end_n the_o wine_n will_v be_v overcome_v by_o the_o water_n so_o as_o of_o the_o wine_n only_o the_o colour_n after_o a_o sort_n may_v be_v perceive_v and_o some_o token_n although_o but_o small_a of_o the_o first_o taste_n thus_o undoubted_o be_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o church_n with_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n since_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n be_v begin_v to_o be_v blend_v which_o as_o they_o have_v daily_o more_o and_o more_o increase_v so_o have_v they_o make_v feeble_a the_o pureness_n of_o doctrine_n and_o mystery_n and_o at_o the_o last_o it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o most_o of_o all_o do_v establish_v a_o church_n have_v after_o a_o sort_n vanish_v away_o so_o as_o whether_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v cease_v to_o be_v the_o church_n or_o else_o be_v so_o infect_v &_o corrupt_v as_o nothing_o in_o a_o manner_n remain_v sound_a therein_o we_o be_v separate_v from_o thence_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o blame_n but_o rather_o of_o praise_n especial_o when_o we_o go_v unto_o the_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n because_o the_o church_n from_o which_o we_o separate_v ourselves_o want_v both_o for_o it_o be_v no_o more_o catholic_n because_o it_o have_v transform_v the_o universal_a church_n into_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o apostolic_a it_o be_v not_o see_v it_o differ_v most_o far_o from_o the_o doctrine_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o have_v depart_v from_o they_o which_o will_v be_v build_v upon_o peter_n and_o his_o successor_n &_o be_v come_v to_o that_o church_n which_o lean_v only_o unto_o christ_n the_o sure_a foundation_n we_o have_v depart_v from_o they_o which_o build_v chaff_n hay_n &_o stubble_n &_o that_o upon_o a_o strange_a foundation_n &_o we_o be_v come_v thither_o whereas_o silver_n gold_n &_o precious_a stone_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n build_v upon_o christ_n himself_o confute_v a_o objection_n touch_v the_o multitude_n cleave_v to_o the_o pope_n confute_v 44_o they_o press_v we_o much_o with_o multitude_n and_o boast_v that_o france_n spain_n and_o italy_n make_v on_o their_o side_n but_o herein_o they_o be_v double_a deceive_v and_o deceive_v other_o first_o of_o all_o the_o great_a part_n of_o christendom_n have_v depart_v from_o they_o or_o take_v not_o part_n with_o they_o second_o the_o multitude_n be_v no_o certain_a note_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o most_o populous_a country_n of_o the_o israelite_n god_n say_v unto_o elias_n 18._o 1._o king_n 19_o 18._o that_o he_o have_v keep_v only_o seven_o thousand_o unto_o himself_o which_o bow_v not_o their_o knee_n unto_o baal_n and_o of_o the_o seed_n that_o be_v cast_v upon_o the_o ground_n 8._o matt._n 13._o 8._o only_o the_o four_o part_n fall_v upon_o the_o good_a ground_n and_o it_o be_v say_v by_o christ_n 32._o luk._n 12._o 32._o fear_v not_o thou_o flock_v because_o thou_o be_v but_o little_a this_o nazianzene_n understanding_n in_o sermone_fw-la de_fw-la seipso_fw-la adversus_fw-la arrianos_fw-la say_v where_o be_v they_o now_o which_o defend_v the_o church_n by_o multitude_n and_o despise_v the_o small_a flock_n he_o therefore_o speak_v these_o thing_n because_o the_o arrian_n by_o favour_n of_o the_o monarch_n have_v possess_v the_o great_a part_n of_o christendom_n &_o mock_v the_o right_a beléever_n as_o be_v most_o few_o nor_o must_v the_o church_n be_v measure_v by_o nobility_n or_o worldly_a honour_n 21._o luk._n 14._o 21._o for_o christ_n warn_v we_o that_o it_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o blind_a the_o lame_a and_o the_o poor_a shall_v be_v call_v out_o of_o the_o street_n and_o shall_v be_v compel_v to_o enter_v when_o as_o other_o which_o be_v bid_v have_v deny_v to_o come_v paul_n also_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n testify_v that_o not_o many_o mighty_a man_n noble_a man_n 26._o 1._o cor._n 1._o 26._o and_o wise_a man_n be_v call_v yea_o &_o jerom_n in_o his_o proheme_n to_o the_o galathian_o the_o 3_o book_n write_v that_o the_o church_n be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o poor_a people_n 45_o and_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o we_o suffer_v not_o ourselves_o to_o be_v deceive_v by_o the_o glorious_a title_n which_o our_o adversary_n abuse_n papist_n title_n of_o the_o papist_n for_o they_o call_v themselves_o apostolic_a catholic_n &_o the_o
speak_v in_o essence_n or_o in_o kind_n but_o this_o very_o agree_v to_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n signify_v and_o that_o which_o augustine_n here_o write_v we_o may_v easy_o perceive_v in_o the_o sacrament_n which_o we_o now_o entreat_v of_o wherein_o the_o outward_a sign_n and_o inward_a matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n have_v their_o property_n ascribe_v one_o to_o a_o other_o now_o that_o i_o have_v sufficient_o speak_v of_o the_o name_n and_o definition_n and_o also_o of_o the_o matter_n and_o form_n of_o the_o sacrament_n there_o rest_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o final_a and_o efficient_a cause_n of_o they_o sacrament_n the_o end_n of_o sacrament_n the_o end_n for_o which_o the_o sacrament_n be_v institute_v be_v that_o our_o mind_n be_v admonish_v by_o the_o sense_n may_v be_v stir_v up_o and_o by_o faith_n take_v hold_v of_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n and_o so_o be_v inflame_v with_o a_o desire_n to_o attain_v unto_o they_o for_o we_o see_v that_o sign_n tend_v to_o no_o other_o end_n but_o to_o transfer_v and_o to_o imprint_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o ourselves_o have_v in_o our_o mind_n into_o the_o mind_n of_o a_o other_o man_n that_o thereby_o he_o may_v be_v make_v the_o more_o certain_a of_o our_o meaning_n and_o will_n and_o this_o be_v not_o common_o do_v but_o in_o matter_n of_o great_a weight_n for_o if_o they_o be_v but_o light_a matter_n sign_n to_o thing_n of_o great_a weight_n be_v add_v sign_n we_o be_v not_o accustom_v to_o confirm_v they_o with_o sign_n but_o in_o thing_n of_o great_a importance_n they_o be_v common_o use_v as_o when_o prince_n be_v consecrate_v when_o matrimony_n be_v contract_v when_o barganinge_n and_o gift_n or_o other_o like_a covenaunt_n of_o great_a weight_n be_v make_v for_o we_o desire_v to_o have_v they_o to_o the_o uttermost_a witness_v and_o to_o be_v know_v not_o only_o by_o reason_n but_o also_o by_o the_o sense_n god._n the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o sacrament_n be_v god._n 4_o but_o there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o efficient_a cause_n of_o the_o sacrament_n give_v but_o either_o god_n or_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o also_o be_v very_o god_n and_o of_o they_o ought_v we_o to_o have_v a_o evident_a testimony_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v most_o plain_o declare_v by_o the_o definition_n which_o we_o have_v now_o set_v forth_o for_o thus_o we_o define_v they_o namely_o that_o sacrament_n be_v sign_n not_o in_o deed_n natural_a but_o give_v and_o that_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o this_o his_o will_n can_v be_v make_v know_v unto_o we_o but_o only_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o know_v how_o many_o there_o be_v in_o number_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n exclude_v how_o many_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n there_o be_v look_v part_n 3_o pl._n 8._o be_v 9_o &c_n &c_n new_o find_v sacrament_n exclude_v we_o see_v that_o christ_n institute_v baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n but_o the_o other_o sacrament_n with_o the_o school_n divine_v set_v forth_o can_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v sacrament_n we_o speak_v not_o this_o as_o though_o we_o deny_v that_o matrimony_n be_v to_o be_v have_v in_o reverence_n or_o that_o the_o institution_n of_o minister_n be_v to_o be_v retain_v still_o or_o the_o penance_n be_v to_o be_v do_v although_o we_o reject_v auricular_a confession_n and_o other_o the_o abuse_n thereof_o and_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n otherwise_o even_o we_o also_o do_v high_o esteem_v those_o thing_n but_o not_o as_o sacrament_n neither_o mislike_v we_o with_o that_o confirmation_n whereby_o child_n when_o they_o come_v to_o age_n shall_v be_v compel_v to_o confess_v their_o faith_n in_o the_o church_n and_o by_o outward_a profession_n to_o approve_v that_o which_o be_v do_v in_o baptism_n when_o they_o understand_v nothing_o but_o yet_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o of_o such_o a_o action_n we_o frame_v not_o a_o sacrament_n but_o as_o touch_v extreme_a unction_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o it_o nothing_o pertain_v unto_o we_o especial_o see_v it_o have_v no_o long_o any_o force_n than_o while_o the_o gift_n of_o heal_a be_v extant_a in_o the_o church_n and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o those_o gift_n be_v now_o long_o since_o take_v away_o it_o be_v a_o folly_n to_o keep_v still_o a_o vain_a sign_n thereof_o neither_o yet_o do_v christ_n command_v that_o this_o unction_n shall_v be_v perpetuallie_o use_v in_o the_o church_n but_o those_o other_o thing_n which_o we_o before_o speak_v of_o although_o they_o may_v still_o be_v retain_v with_o profit_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o proper_o sacrament_n either_o because_o they_o have_v not_o outward_a sign_n or_o because_o they_o want_v manifest_a word_n of_o promise_n proper_o why_o beside_o baptism_n &_o the_o eucharist_n the_o rest_n be_v not_o sacrament_n proper_o which_o shall_v by_o a_o visible_a sign_n be_v seal_v or_o else_o because_o there_o be_v no_o commandment_n of_o god_n extant_a whereby_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o observe_v those_o thing_n basilius_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-it where_o he_o recken_v up_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n wherewith_o we_o ought_v to_o defend_v ourselves_o and_o that_o upon_o the_o sunday_n and_o from_o the_o resurrection_n unto_o the_o feast_n of_o pentecost_n they_o shall_v worship_v upright_o and_o stand_v tradition_n basil_n reckon_v holy_a unction_n among_o the_o tradition_n among_o other_o also_o he_o recken_v holy_a unction_n hereby_o we_o see_v that_o this_o father_n hold_v not_o that_o this_o unction_n be_v have_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o our_o adversary_n rash_o do_v further_o by_o his_o word_n we_o gather_v of_o how_o great_a weight_n it_o be_v since_o it_o be_v account_v but_o of_o the_o same_o value_n with_o those_o thing_n which_o have_v now_o long_o since_o grow_v out_o of_o ure_n 5_o now_o let_v we_o see_v sacrament_n the_o effect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n what_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n in_o the_o four_o book_n in_o the_o first_o dist_n put_v three_o effect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o he_o will_v that_o as_o man_n for_o pleasure_n sake_n have_v make_v themselves_o subject_a unto_o thing_n sensible_a and_o inferior_a unto_o themselves_o so_o now_o they_o shall_v for_o piety_n sake_n do_v the_o same_o that_o of_o a_o certain_a modesty_n or_o as_o they_o speak_v humility_n they_o shall_v suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v make_v subject_n unto_o these_o visible_a sign_n of_o the_o sacrament_n creature_n we_o be_v not_o by_o the_o sacrament_n make_v subject_a unto_o creature_n but_o herein_o he_o seem_v not_o to_o say_v well_o for_o by_o the_o sacrament_n we_o be_v not_o make_v subject_a unto_o creature_n neither_o ought_v we_o to_o worship_v they_o only_o the_o mind_n be_v there_o erect_v unto_o god_n that_o man_n may_v be_v restore_v unto_o his_o old_a dignity_n for_o he_o be_v set_v to_o be_v above_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v see_v and_o not_o to_o be_v subject_a unto_o they_o the_o second_o effect_n he_o put_v to_o be_v of_o instruction_n that_o by_o the_o outward_a sign_n we_o shall_v be_v instruct_v of_o heavenly_a thing_n thing_n in_o sacrament_n we_o be_v instruct_v as_o touch_v divine_a thing_n which_o also_o we_o undoubted_o affirm_v last_o he_o say_v that_o therefore_o they_o be_v institute_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v idle_a but_o be_v profitable_o exercise_v in_o true_a ceremony_n cast_v away_o superstition_n but_o this_o unless_o it_o be_v declare_v be_v not_o very_o plain_a for_o we_o be_v sufficient_o occupy_v in_o beléeve_v pray_v read_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o do_v good_a to_o our_o neighbour_n but_o outward_a ceremony_n although_o they_o be_v institute_v of_o god_n yet_o without_o faith_n they_o nothing_o profit_n wherefore_o the_o exercise_v of_o they_o do_v not_o of_o itself_o please_o god_n howbeit_o if_o faith_n be_v present_a superstition_n can_v take_v no_o place_n for_o faith_n have_v always_o a_o regard_n unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o so_o after_o this_o manner_n they_o may_v be_v call_v exercise_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o piety_n and_o be_v count_v acceptable_a unto_o god._n but_o we_o will_v after_o a_o better_a sort_n effect_n other_o effect_n set_v forth_o these_o effect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n first_o we_o say_v that_o they_o instruct_v we_o which_o thing_n be_v already_o say_v secondlie_o promise_n the_o kindle_v in_o we_o a_o faith_n and_o desire_n of_o the_o promise_n that_o they_o kindle_v in_o we_o faith_n and_o a_o desire_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n thirdlie_o that_o they_o
take_v of_o you_o than_o i_o have_v write_v they_o for_o that_o which_o i_o speak_v with_o a_o sincere_a faith_n i_o will_v also_o to_o be_v take_v in_o good_a part_n i_o know_v how_o tender_a be_v the_o ear_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n howbeit_o as_o touch_v you_o i_o have_v a_o very_a great_a hope_n since_o you_o be_v of_o christ_n not_o of_o this_o world_n wherefore_o set_v aside_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o ethnic_n i_o will_v lead_v you_o a_o while_n to_o the_o singular_a and_o notable_a example_n of_o david_n for_o he_o while_o he_o live_v be_v both_o famous_a in_o princely_a power_n and_o great_o renown_v in_o excellent_a holiness_n god_n the_o example_n of_o david_n in_o restore_v the_o religion_n of_o god_n wherefore_o if_o i_o be_v desirous_a to_o have_v you_o become_v such_o a_o one_o as_o he_o be_v i_o desire_v nothing_o contrary_a either_o to_o your_o dignity_n or_o godliness_n he_o when_o he_o shall_v be_v appoint_v to_o the_o government_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o israel_n before_o he_o can_v attain_v to_o the_o same_o suffer_v even_o as_o you_o have_v do_v most_o gréevous_a trouble_n but_o when_o he_o be_v come_v thereunto_o he_o think_v nothing_o aught_o to_o be_v do_v before_o he_o have_v restore_v religion_n now_o ruin_v whereof_o the_o principal_a point_n and_o sum_n in_o that_o age_n herein_o consist_v that_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o covenaunt_n be_v the_o principal_a token_n of_o god_n may_v be_v reduce_v unto_o the_o former_a estimation_n which_o by_o the_o negligence_n of_o king_n saul_n lie_v without_o regard_n have_v thereunto_o in_o the_o private_a house_n of_o one_o aminadab_n in_o gibea_n 6._o 1._o sam._n 2._o 6._o this_o the_o godly_a king_n can_v not_o suffer_v wherefore_o he_o determine_v to_o convey_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o king_n court._n howbeit_o in_o that_o wherein_o he_o endeavour_v to_o deal_v godly_a the_o priest_n do_v not_o right_o exercise_v their_o office_n wherefore_o the_o godly_a king_n in_o a_o manner_n despair_v of_o that_o he_o look_v for_o howbeit_o he_o within_o a_o while_n after_o gather_v his_o wit_n together_o both_o drive_v they_o to_o do_v their_o office_n right_o and_o he_o himself_o also_o with_o incredible_a joy_n and_o with_o singular_a gladness_n of_o the_o people_n most_o happy_o bring_v home_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o mighty_a god_n into_o zion_n even_o this_o same_o work_n most_o noble_a queen_n elizabeth_n be_v together_o with_o your_o kingdom_n commit_v to_o your_o trust_n for_o it_o behoove_v that_o you_o restore_v again_o into_o his_o place_n the_o holy_a gospel_n of_o christ_n which_o through_o injury_n of_o the_o time_n and_o importunity_n of_o the_o adversary_n have_v lie_v some_o year_n pass_v neglect_v i_o will_v not_o say_v tread_v under_o foot_n this_o if_o you_o shall_v perform_v all_o thing_n shall_v happen_v prosper_v ouslie_o unto_o you_o no_o less_o than_o they_o do_v unto_o most_o godly_a king_n david_n for_o if_o it_o be_v say_v unto_o every_o christian_a man_n that_o he_o shall_v first_o seek_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n than_o other_o thing_n shall_v easy_o be_v supply_v 33._o matt._n 6._o 33._o shall_v we_o not_o think_v that_o the_o same_o be_v command_v unto_o king_n certes_o if_o it_o be_v command_v all_o man_n to_o worship_n god_n most_o sincere_o king_n be_v not_o exempt_v from_o that_o precept_n nay_o rather_o the_o great_a estate_n they_o bear_v among_o man_n the_o more_o be_v they_o bind_v to_o that_o law_n of_o god_n howbeit_o there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o admonish_v your_o majesty_n in_o many_o word_n who_o the_o heavenly_a father_n have_v inspire_v with_o a_o principal_a spirit_n as_o he_o do_v david_n pastor_n a_o danger_n in_o the_o church_n as_o concern_v pastor_n but_o this_o danger_n be_v like_a to_o happen_v namely_o lest_o those_o which_o at_o this_o day_n be_v call_v priest_n shall_v err_v in_o the_o work_n of_o restore_v the_o church_n even_o as_o it_o come_v then_o to_o pass_v not_o without_o great_a trouble_n when_o the_o lord_n smite_v oza_n 7._o 2._o sam._n 6._o 7._o for_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v not_o have_v be_v carry_v in_o a_o cart_n but_o bear_v upon_o the_o shoulder_n of_o the_o priest_n even_o as_o the_o law_n of_o god_n have_v prescribe_v wherefore_o we_o must_v now_o take_v special_a care_n and_o heed_n lest_o such_o thing_n do_v happen_v that_o while_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n either_o be_v deceive_v by_o error_n or_o indevor_n to_o shun_v labour_n and_o just_a discipline_n they_o go_v about_o to_o bear_v the_o ark_n of_o the_o gospel_n not_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o example_n of_o a_o more_o pure_a life_n but_o upon_o the_o cart_n of_o unprofitable_a ceremony_n and_o foul_a labour_n of_o hire_a servant_n this_o if_o you_o shall_v consider_v most_o noble_a queen_n that_o it_o come_v so_o to_o pass_v you_o shall_v not_o as_o david_n be_v be_v move_v more_o than_o be_v requisite_a neither_o will_v you_o intermit_v the_o work_n begin_v as_o he_o for_o a_o time_n do_v but_o will_v do_v the_o same_o out_o of_o hand_n as_o we_o read_v that_o he_o a_o while_n after_o do_v afterward_o 1._o par._n 23._o &_o afterward_o he_o correct_v the_o error_n of_o the_o priest_n he_o dispose_v the_o levite_n into_o certain_a order_n &_o command_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o strict_a rule_n of_o the_o law_n these_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o all_o godly_a man_n most_o bless_a queen_n do_v expect_v of_o you_o hitherunto_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o be_v very_o great_o to_o be_v lament_v agree_v together_o and_o withstand_v god_n and_o his_o anointed_n 2._o psal_n 2._o 2._o from_o who_o society_n even_o as_o your_o majesty_n be_v a_o stranger_n so_o must_v you_o hear_v what_o be_v say_v unto_o you_o and_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o king_n 10._o ib._n ver_fw-la 10._o understand_v now_o o_o you_o king_n be_v learned_a o_o you_o that_o judge_v the_o earth_n serve_v the_o lord_n in_o fear_n but_o you_o will_v say_v show_v i_o what_o religious_a worship_n that_o shall_v be_v which_o be_v require_v towards_o god_n very_o no_o other_o but_o with_o godly_a severity_n to_o prohibit_v and_o correct_v especial_o in_o worship_v of_o he_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v commit_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n for_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o a_o king_n serve_v god_n two_o manner_n of_o way_n first_o in_o respect_n that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n by_o faithful_a beléeve_v and_o live_v then_o in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o king_n which_o govern_v the_o people_n by_o establish_v in_o force_n convenient_a such_o law_n as_o command_v just_a and_o godly_a thing_n and_o forbid_v the_o contrary_n this_o do_v ezechias_n when_o he_o destroy_v the_o grove_n idol_n temple_n king_n 2._o king_n 18._o 4._o the_o example_n of_o godly_a king_n and_o those_o high_a place_n which_o be_v erect_v against_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n although_o that_o sometime_o they_o do_v not_o sacrifice_v amiss_o in_o they_o the_o self-same_a thing_n do_v godly_a josias_n bring_v to_o pass_v with_o great_a diligence_n 4._o 2._o king_n 23._o verse_n 4._o zeal_n and_o incredible_a godliness_n 7._o jonas_n 3._o 7._o this_o do_v the_o king_n of_o the_o ninivites_fw-la not_o foreslowe_v to_o do_v which_o compel_v the_o whole_a city_n to_o pacify_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n this_o do_v darius_n perform_v unto_o the_o true_a god_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o daniel_n 26._o dan._n 6._o 26._o this_o also_o do_v nabucadnezer_n fulfil_v when_o by_o a_o most_o severe_a law_n he_o bridle_v the_o tongue_n of_o they_o that_o dwell_v in_o his_o kingdom_n from_o blaspheme_v the_o live_a god_n 95._o dan._n 3._o 95._o i_o may_v easy_o show_v of_o very_a many_o king_n and_o mighty_a emperor_n after_o christ_n that_o do_v the_o same_o i_o mean_v constantine_n theodosius_n charles_n the_o great_a and_o many_o other_o but_o because_o i_o will_v not_o go_v either_o from_o the_o memory_n of_o our_o time_n or_o from_o your_o own_o most_o honourable_a progeny_n this_o do_v your_o most_o noble_a brother_n edward_n king_n of_o england_n endeavour_n to_o his_o power_n and_o more_o than_o his_o age_n will_v give_v leave_n who_o reign_n our_o sin_n and_o intolerable_a ingratitude_n suffer_v not_o any_o long_a to_o be_v continue_v only_a god_n will_v show_v unto_o the_o world_n the_o singular_a virtue_n and_o pass_a godliness_n of_o that_o imp_n secondlie_o that_o he_o may_v somewhat_o chasten_v we_o according_a as_o our_o ill_a desert_n require_v he_o the_o soon_o call_v he_o out_o of_o the_o earth_n unto_o he_o howbeit_o the_o case_n go_v well_o because_o he_o after_o a_o certain_a fatherly_a correction_n use_v have_v take_v pity_n upon_o we_o see_v he_o have_v at_o this_o time_n place_v you_o
i_o can_v otherwise_o do_v i_o desire_v you_o for_o christ_n his_o sake_n who_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o you_o serve_v in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n that_o even_o as_o you_o have_v be_v teach_v both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o life_n by_o he_o who_o we_o now_o lament_v we_o may_v fly_v unto_o the_o scripture_n to_o the_o intent_n our_o sorrow_n may_v be_v so_o temper_v as_o it_o exceed_v not_o christian_a measure_n and_o the_o bound_n of_o godliness_n there_o shall_v we_o find_v a_o true_a medicine_n of_o the_o wound_n &_o assure_a remedy_n of_o our_o sorrow_n christ_n say_v unto_o the_o people_n the_o maiden_n be_v not_o dead_a 24._o matt._n 9_o 24._o but_o sleep_v and_o of_o lazarus_n which_o be_v already_o depart_v our_o friend_n lazarus_n sleep_v 13._o john_n 11._o 11_o 1._o thess_n 4._o 13._o paul_n also_o call_v they_o sléeper_n for_o who_o he_o will_v not_o have_v we_o in_o such_o sort_n to_o sorrow_n as_o do_v the_o ungodly_a which_o have_v cast_v away_o all_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n also_o job_n a_o most_o valiant_a captain_n of_o our_o warfare_n teach_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v say_v with_o he_o 21._o job._n 1._o 21._o the_o lord_n give_v and_o the_o lord_n have_v take_v away_o even_o as_o it_o have_v please_v the_o lord_n so_o be_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v if_o we_o have_v receive_v good_a thing_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n why_o can_v we_o not_o also_o endure_v evil_a thing_n this_o godliness_n and_o fortitude_n do_v the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o whereof_o since_o your_o husband_n breast_n be_v a_o most_o large_a liberarie_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o you_o so_o learned_a the_o same_o of_o he_o as_o you_o have_v no_o need_n of_o my_o admonishment_n howbeit_o while_o i_o rehearse_v these_o thing_n i_o teach_v you_o not_o but_o i_o stir_v you_o up_o together_o with_o myself_o to_o renew_v in_o our_o memory_n now_o when_o most_o need_n be_v those_o thing_n whereof_o through_o the_o mist_n of_o sorrow_n and_o tear_n we_o have_v sometime_o be_v small_o mindful_a they_o which_o be_v destitute_a of_o christian_a hope_n do_v bewail_v their_o dead_a without_o any_o consolation_n forsomuch_o as_o they_o perceive_v themselves_o to_o be_v perpetual_o divide_v from_o they_o but_o we_o for_o a_o most_o surety_n know_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n that_o they_o which_o be_v dead_a be_v not_o lose_v see_v we_o have_v send_v they_o before_o unto_o god_n and_o into_o the_o everlasting_a tabernacle_n we_o sorrow_n indeed_o that_o we_o be_v pluck_v away_o from_o so_o acceptable_a so_o profitable_a and_o wise_a a_o companion_n especial_o in_o the_o journey_n of_o this_o dark_a life_n but_o we_o must_v also_o rejoice_v and_o give_v thanks_o unto_o god_n that_o we_o have_v have_v he_o so_o long_o with_o us._n he_o die_v most_o constant_a and_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n he_o see_v not_o a_o multitude_n of_o evil_n which_o hang_v over_o our_o head_n and_o over_o the_o church_n because_o of_o our_o sin_n i_o will_v to_o god_n that_o we_o also_o may_v be_v loose_v from_o hence_o before_o the_o flood_n of_o calamity_n overslowe_v oh_o how_o great_o be_o i_o afraid_a of_o we_o wretch_n who_o perpetual_o preach_v christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n when_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o live_v a_o very_a ungodlie_a life_n our_o bucer_n be_v dead_a in_o peace_n he_o be_v not_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o christ_n enemy_n &_o the_o good_a thing_n which_o he_o plentifullie_o sow_v in_o his_o life_n time_n he_o now_o reap_v with_o singular_a pleasure_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n yet_o nevertheless_o do_v not_o you_o think_v but_o that_o i_o do_v oftentimes_o consider_v with_o myself_o that_o the_o severity_n of_o god_n may_v seem_v unto_o you_o to_o be_v very_o rigorous_a which_o so_o often_o exercise_v you_o with_o many_o funeral_n of_o you_o with_o exile_n with_o great_a charge_n of_o household_n &_o with_o no_o small_a disease_n of_o the_o body_n but_o yet_o i_o beseech_v you_o let_v it_o in_o like_a manner_n come_v to_o your_o remembrance_n that_o it_o be_v god_n which_o smit_v wherefore_o he_o be_v a_o excellent_a father_n will_v minister_v strength_n to_o bear_v the_o stroke_n not_o that_o he_o be_v glad_a and_o rejoice_v at_o our_o calamity_n but_o that_o his_o infinite_a knowledge_n do_v providentlie_o understand_v how_o expedient_a it_o be_v otherwhile_o for_o we_o to_o be_v turmoil_v and_o press_v with_o adversity_n israel_n be_v not_o teach_v but_o by_o many_o stripe_n and_o sorrow_n and_o tribulation_n work_v patience_n patience_n 3._o rom._n 5._o 3._o trial_n trial_n hope_v and_o hope_n confound_v not_o and_o therefore_o that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v terrify_v the_o scripture_n forewarn_v we_o that_o we_o come_v unto_o bondage_n shall_v prepare_v our_o heart_n not_o unto_o pleasure_n and_o delight_n but_o unto_o temptation_n by_o these_o reason_n she_o be_v move_v which_o be_v a_o true_a widow_n to_o make_v earnest_a prayer_n unto_o her_o god_n day_n and_o night_n howbeit_o not_o to_o pass_v the_o measure_n and_o bound_n of_o a_o epistle_n this_o last_o i_o desire_v that_o you_o do_v not_o think_v yourself_o to_o be_v forsake_v or_o desolate_a see_v you_o have_v christ_n dwell_v in_o your_o heart_n by_o faith_n your_o husband_n which_o betroth_a himself_n unto_o you_o you_o have_v lose_v in_o the_o flesh_n but_o christ_n unto_o who_o you_o be_v marry_v in_o godliness_n and_o sincere_a religion_n you_o shall_v never_o lose_v by_o any_o violence_n of_o death_n god_n who_o be_v the_o father_n and_o author_n of_o all_o consolation_n comfort_v you_o your_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n comfort_v you_o final_o let_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n comfort_v you_o who_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o be_v very_o plentiful_o pour_v into_o your_o heart_n and_o this_o special_o and_o above_o all_o other_o thing_n provide_v that_o your_o heart_n may_v evermore_o dwell_v in_o the_o protection_n of_o the_o lord_n my_o wife_n and_o julius_n be_v so_o great_o disquiet_v for_o this_o gréevous_a mishap_n as_o if_o they_o do_v not_o sorrow_n equal_o with_o you_o yet_o do_v they_o come_v very_o near_o thereunto_o and_o they_o pray_v with_o their_o whole_a heart_n that_o the_o abundant_a help_n of_o god_n may_v spéedilie_o relieve_v you_o and_o all_o this_o godly_a family_n and_o in_o no_o wise_n think_v that_o you_o be_v to_o make_v any_o less_o account_n of_o i_o than_o when_o your_o bucer_n and_o i_o live_v wherefore_o i_o pray_v you_o also_o that_o if_o my_o help_n may_v any_o way_n stand_v you_o in_o stead_n you_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o use_v the_o same_o for_o you_o shall_v evermore_o find_v it_o open_a and_o ready_a at_o your_o godly_a desire_n to_o ralph_n gualther_n if_o i_o shall_v give_v thanks_n unto_o you_o for_o the_o exceed_a great_a pain_n which_o you_o have_v take_v about_o the_o print_n of_o my_o book_n neither_o shall_v i_o be_v able_a to_o answer_v sufficient_o to_o your_o desert_n nor_o yet_o can_v i_o declare_v what_o great_a account_n i_o make_v of_o the_o pleasure_n which_o you_o show_v i_o wherefore_o i_o rather_o desire_v that_o some_o occasion_n may_v be_v offer_v unto_o i_o wherein_o i_o may_v show_v not_o in_o word_n but_o in_o deed_n what_o account_n i_o make_v of_o this_o your_o good_a will_n towards_o i_o true_o it_o grieve_v i_o very_o much_o that_o in_o the_o restore_n of_o these_o trifle_n of_o i_o there_o shall_v be_v so_o great_a pain_n take_v and_o i_o be_o great_o afraid_a lest_o the_o labour_n will_v exceed_v the_o matter_n i_o have_v oftentimes_o consider_v with_o myself_o that_o through_o my_o negligence_n it_o have_v happen_v that_o as_o good_a or_o better_a thing_n may_v have_v be_v compile_v by_o you_o with_o a_o small_a labour_n more_o than_o you_o can_v put_v in_o order_n my_o uncorrected_a copy_n but_o such_o be_v your_o good_a will_n as_o you_o be_v content_a to_o take_v every_o thing_n patient_o because_o you_o will_v not_o deny_v your_o travel_n to_o your_o friend_n assure_v yourself_o therefore_o that_o i_o shall_v be_v a_o continual_a debtor_n unto_o you_o for_o this_o your_o favour_n which_o i_o doubt_v i_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o requite_v but_o god_n which_o be_v a_o most_o just_a weigh_o of_o godly_a labour_n will_v not_o suffer_v you_o to_o bestow_v your_o labour_n in_o vain_a now_o see_v you_o in_o like_a manner_n most_o dear_a belove_a brother_n in_o christ_n if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n wherein_o you_o will_v have_v i_o to_o deal_v for_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v find_v i_o no_o less_o forward_o in_o your_o business_n than_o you_o have_v show_v yourself_o painful_a and_o willing_a in_o i_o the_o young_a man_n which_o you_o commend_v unto_o i_o in_o your_o letter_n beside_o
doubt_v that_o i_o have_v speak_v more_o at_o large_a than_o your_o business_n may_v endure_v and_o perhaps_o have_v say_v less_o than_o can_v full_o express_v my_o meaning_n i_o pray_v you_o when_o you_o shall_v think_v good_a hide_v not_o any_o thing_n of_o your_o opinion_n from_o i_o geneva_n martyr_n call_v to_o geneva_n now_o it_o remain_v that_o i_o make_v answer_n unto_o the_o choice_n of_o our_o italian_a church_n and_o i_o will_v dispatch_v this_o point_n in_o few_o word_n for_o that_o the_o cause_n seem_v unto_o i_o to_o be_v easy_a assure_o i_o be_o desirous_a &_o it_o will_v delight_v i_o very_o much_o that_o yet_o once_o at_o the_o length_n i_o may_v do_v service_n to_o my_o own_o countryman_n of_o italy_n for_o i_o be_o not_o make_v of_o brass_n and_o my_o flesh_n be_v not_o of_o iron_n wherefore_o even_o as_o paul_n desire_v salvation_n to_o the_o jew_n so_o i_o principal_o desire_v that_o my_o italian_a countryman_n may_v be_v save_v howbeit_o as_o you_o yourself_o know_v i_o be_o not_o at_o my_o own_o liberty_n this_o commonweal_n and_o church_n have_v have_v i_o bind_v unto_o it_o welnéere_o the_o space_n of_o twelve_o year_n for_o when_o i_o go_v into_o england_n i_o go_v with_o the_o goodwill_n of_o this_o magistrate_n and_o church_n i_o hope_v when_o i_o do_v return_v to_o be_v dismiss_v which_o if_o it_o have_v happen_v i_o be_v mind_v to_o come_v direct_o unto_o you_o but_o when_o the_o matter_n be_v propound_v in_o the_o senate_n i_o have_v no_o leave_n to_o depart_v nay_o rather_o i_o be_v appoint_v again_o to_o my_o former_a place_n and_o yoke_n further_o because_o many_o benefit_n be_v show_v unto_o i_o by_o this_o senate_n and_o church_n i_o fear_v lest_o i_o shall_v be_v justly_o accuse_v of_o inconstancy_n or_o else_o of_o some_o other_o greedy_a desire_n if_o i_o shall_v attempt_v to_o withdraw_v myself_o from_o hence_o without_o some_o just_a occasion_n what_o shall_v i_o pretend_v that_o the_o italian_a church_n be_v destitute_a of_o a_o pastor_n they_o have_v at_o the_o leastwise_o celsus_n who_o be_v as_o dear_a unto_o i_o as_o my_o own_o soul_n and_o who_o i_o very_o well_o know_v to_o be_v a_o honest_a man_n learned_a grave_a and_o fit_a to_o govern_v the_o church_n shall_v i_o say_v that_o i_o will_v assist_v he_o with_o my_o counsel_n in_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o the_o great_a importance_n but_o you_o be_v appoint_v there_o to_o be_v a_o superintendent_n who_o of_o your_o charity_n will_v never_o deny_v he_o your_o help_n and_o counsel_n undoubted_o there_o be_v not_o even_o any_o honest_a colour_n whereby_o i_o can_v crave_v of_o this_o magistrate_n to_o be_v dismiss_v further_o although_o i_o perform_v not_o in_o the_o school_n so_o much_o as_o i_o ought_v yet_o as_o i_o think_v my_o labour_n be_v not_o there_o unprofitable_a they_o which_o hear_v be_v both_o german_n and_o other_o stranger_n and_o it_o be_v diligent_o provide_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v teach_v those_o thing_n which_o ought_v afterward_o to_o be_v unlearned_a again_o and_o while_o zanchus_fw-la and_o i_o which_o be_v of_o very_o great_a familiarity_n do_v thus_o proceed_v there_o be_v no_o place_n in_o the_o school_n for_o error_n beside_o this_o the_o french_a church_n intreat_v i_o not_o to_o depart_v you_o be_v wise_a in_o christ_n consider_v you_o these_o thing_n diligent_o i_o will_v stand_v to_o your_o judgement_n that_o which_o you_o shall_v judge_v meet_a to_o be_v do_v i_o will_v do_v but_o yet_o this_o i_o willing_o promise_v that_o if_o ever_o any_o honest_a occasion_n shall_v be_v offer_v whereby_o i_o may_v by_o just_a mean_n unwind_v myself_o from_o hence_o there_o shall_v be_v nothing_o that_o i_o will_v more_o desire_n than_o to_o go_v thither_o that_o especial_o with_o you_o and_o with_o my_o countryman_n the_o rest_n of_o my_o life_n i_o may_v live_v to_o christ_n fare_v well_o you_o man_n of_o god_n and_o in_o many_o respect_n most_o reverence_v of_o i_o sturmius_fw-la sleidan_n and_o zanchus_fw-la do_v most_o dutiful_o salute_v you_o from_o strasborough_n the_o 8._o of_o march_n 1555._o to_o master_n john_n caluin_n 15._o reverend_a sir_n i_o late_o receive_v this_o packet_n of_o letter_n but_o i_o mean_v not_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v deliver_v unto_o you_o without_o letter_n from_o i_o i_o have_v my_o health_n after_o the_o usual_a manner_n and_o i_o be_v glad_a to_o see_v the_o master_n of_o saint_n andrew_n your_o fellow_n minister_n of_o who_o i_o plain_o understand_v the_o affair_n of_o geneva_n which_o i_o very_o much_o desire_v because_o of_o the_o sundry_a rumour_n which_o be_v spread_v bless_a be_v god_n the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o forsake_v not_o they_o that_o be_v he_o the_o saxon_n be_v not_o at_o quiet_a they_o have_v set_v forth_o a_o very_a vain_a bolimonge_n for_o so_o they_o call_v it_o they_o gather_v certain_a sentence_n out_o of_o the_o father_n and_o also_o out_o of_o luther_n philip_n brentius_n pomeranus_n and_o such_o other_o they_o add_v thereunto_o bucer_n illiricus_fw-la and_o joachim_n westphale_n to_o the_o intent_n they_o may_v show_v themselves_o to_o agree_v among_o themselves_o also_o they_o have_v insert_v certain_a epistle_n write_v sometime_o against_o us._n but_o they_o touch_v neither_o you_o nor_o i_o by_o name_n they_o shameful_o rebuke_v john_n a_o lasco_n not_o in_o deed_n that_o he_o maintain_v a_o private_a opinion_n but_o only_o under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o sacramentarie_a and_o forsooth_o in_o this_o fragment_n they_o have_v a_o special_a title_n that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v every_o where_o this_o now_o they_o do_v open_o defend_v and_o this_o article_n they_o handle_v in_o three_o or_o four_o leaf_n and_o use_v no_o other_o reason_n than_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n take_v the_o nature_n of_o man_n into_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o substance_n at_o the_o last_o they_o have_v add_v a_o place_n touch_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o magistrate_n which_o i_o think_v they_o do_v for_o no_o other_o cause_n but_o to_o inflame_v prince_n against_o we_o yet_o do_v they_o so_o unwiselie_o and_o fond_o speak_v all_o thing_n as_o they_o have_v more_o need_n to_o be_v pity_v than_o confute_v what_o will_v our_o philip_n melanchthon_n say_v they_o cite_v he_o every_o where_o for_o a_o witness_n howbeit_o yourself_o shall_v the_o better_a judge_n when_o you_o see_v the_o book_n molinaeus_n be_v return_v hither_o from_o the_o marriage_n with_o the_o prince_n i_o hear_v of_o he_o that_o he_o judge_v certain_a thing_n amiss_o touch_v fréewil_n and_o that_o he_o will_v publish_v the_o same_o i_o call_v the_o man_n to_o i_o i_o show_v he_o what_o great_a hurt_n he_o shall_v do_v aswell_o to_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n as_o unto_o the_o faith_n he_o seem_v to_o be_v persuade_v and_o promise_v that_o he_o will_v not_o do_v it_o yea_o and_o he_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v ever_o in_o his_o mind_n to_o publish_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o write_v of_o this_o matter_n moreover_o doctor_n baldwine_n when_o we_o be_v talk_v together_o of_o other_o matter_n say_v that_o you_o let_v he_o understand_v that_o molinaeus_n complain_v of_o he_o that_o he_o possess_v his_o place_n among_o us._n true_o if_o he_o so_o say_v i_o marvel_v very_o much_o for_o when_o he_o be_v here_o he_o can_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o master_n of_o the_o school_n wherefore_o he_o go_v to_o tubinge_v and_o there_o receive_v a_o place_n and_o almost_o a_o whole_a year_n profess_v the_o law_n afterward_o he_o go_v to_o mombelgard_n &_o take_v the_o same_o state_n again_o and_o while_o he_o be_v there_o he_o send_v i_o letter_n of_o commendation_n by_o master_n baldwine_n which_o come_v hither_o so_o that_o this_o place_n be_v then_o void_a wherefore_o in_o my_o judgement_n there_o be_v no_o just_a cause_n why_o he_o shall_v complain_v furthermore_o as_o i_o hear_v this_o day_n there_o be_v a_o book_n set_v forth_o by_o joachim_n westphale_n as_o they_o say_v against_o you_o or_o more_o true_o against_o the_o sacramentary_n i_o have_v not_o see_v the_o book_n it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o these_o man_n neither_o can_v write_v well_o nor_o yet_o will_v hold_v their_o peace_n all_o these_o thing_n of_o they_o they_o have_v cause_v to_o be_v print_v at_o franckeforde_n perhaps_o because_o they_o may_v trouble_v the_o french_a and_o english_a church_n which_o be_v gather_v there_o garnerius_n be_v depart_v from_o hence_o and_o be_v go_v to_o the_o landgrave_n our_o church_n begin_v again_o to_o take_v breath_n and_o if_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n pleasure_n it_o will_v one_o day_n be_v at_o some_o more_o rest_n but_o of_o a_o perfect_a quietness_n i_o do_v not_o easy_o assure_v myself_o very_o they_o
thanks_n for_o your_o so_o gentle_a and_o love_a entertain_v of_o julius_n true_o he_o declare_v many_o thing_n of_o your_o coutesie_n which_o in_o very_a deed_n be_v not_o only_o beléeve_v of_o i_o but_o those_o thing_n which_o of_o your_o goodness_n you_o have_v do_v unto_o he_o i_o make_v account_n of_o they_o to_o be_v do_v unto_o myself_o and_o i_o beseech_v god_n that_o he_o will_v long_o preserve_v you_o in_o health_n among_o us._n fare_v well_o right_a reverend_a prelate_n i_o beseech_v you_o love_v i_o still_o as_o you_o do_v my_o wife_n hearty_o salute_v you_o and_o both_o of_o we_o together_o send_v you_o love_a salutation_n from_o tigure_v the_o 23._o day_n of_o august_n 1561._o to_o master_n john_n caluin_n 50._o albeit_o right_a excellent_a man_n our_o beza_n will_v in_o his_o own_o person_n show_v you_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v here_o do_v with_o we_o in_o that_o matter_n for_o the_o which_o he_o come_v yet_o do_v i_o think_v good_a not_o to_o let_v he_o pass_v from_o hence_o without_o my_o letter_n whereby_o i_o may_v partly_o salute_v you_o and_o parley_v also_o signify_v of_o how_o ready_a and_o willing_a a_o mind_n i_o be_o to_o obey_v the_o desire_n of_o the_o frenchchurche_n true_o i_o will_v never_o refuse_v any_o labour_n nor_o any_o peril_n in_o so_o notable_a a_o cause_n god_n which_o be_v the_o fountain_n &_o original_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n vouchsafe_v to_o prosper_v our_o enterprise_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n assure_v you_o yourself_o of_o i_o in_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o my_o power_n to_o do_v fare_v well_o my_o good_a friend_n god_n long_o preserve_v you_o in_o safety_n and_o bless_v your_o godly_a labour_n from_o zuricke_n the_o 13._o of_o julie_n 1561._o i_o pray_v you_o salute_v my_o lord_n marquis_n to_o master_n john_n caluin_n 51._o the_o king_n ambassador_n a_o very_a noble_a man_n have_v find_v the_o mean_n that_o the_o french_a king_n safeconducte_v be_v bring_v hither_o which_o when_o i_o have_v read_v i_o judge_v it_o to_o be_v strong_a &_o sufficient_a enough_o bullinger_n show_v the_o same_o to_o both_o the_o consul_n who_o answer_v that_o they_o think_v the_o matter_n be_v now_o deal_v in_o good_a earnest_n but_o they_o think_v not_o that_o as_o yet_o any_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v determine_v of_o the_o journey_n until_o of_o this_o matter_n somewhat_o be_v write_v out_o of_o france_n which_o also_o i_o perceive_v to_o be_v your_o judgement_n by_o those_o thing_n which_o you_o write_v unto_o i_o but_o as_o touch_v i_o i_o continue_v in_o the_o same_o mind_n and_o will_n which_o i_o protest_v here_o to_o our_o love_a brother_n beza_n and_o which_o i_o signify_v unto_o you_o by_o my_o last_o letter_n i_o change_v not_o my_o mind_n but_o i_o promise_v that_o in_o this_o matter_n i_o will_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n do_v whatsoever_o lie_v in_o i_o and_o i_o will_v protract_v no_o time_n so_o soon_o as_o ever_o i_o shall_v be_v dismiss_v i_o give_v you_o most_o hearty_a thanks_n for_o the_o book_n i_o have_v not_o yet_o read_v they_o because_o of_o my_o business_n howbeit_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o they_o smell_v of_o the_o store-house_n of_o your_o goodness_n and_o learning_n the_o letter_n which_o you_o very_o providentlie_o write_v unto_o the_o king_n both_o we_o have_v read_v and_o do_v also_o very_a well_o like_a of_o they_o and_o doubt_v you_o not_o but_o we_o will_v take_v great_a heed_n that_o neither_o they_o be_v spread_v abroad_o nor_o yet_o that_o they_o go_v far_o from_o i_o bullinger_n and_o the_o other_o fellow_n minister_v salute_v you_o god_n long_o preserve_v you_o my_o good_a friend_n in_o health_n and_o rich_o bless_v your_o labour_n from_o zuricke_n the_o 13._o of_o august_n 1561._o to_o henry_n bullinger_n 52._o since_o the_o letter_n which_o i_o send_v from_o newburge_n the_o 30._o france_n peter_n martyr_n journey_n into_o france_n day_n of_o august_n i_o can_v not_o hitherto_o write_v any_o thing_n partly_o because_o i_o be_v in_o continual_a journey_n and_o partly_o because_o there_o be_v no_o store_n of_o carrier_n but_o now_o when_o i_o be_v come_v to_o paris_n whole_a and_o safe_a together_o with_o my_o company_n the_o 9_o day_n of_o september_n i_o think_v nothing_o better_o than_o to_o find_v mean_n that_o you_o may_v understande_v of_o these_o thing_n first_o that_o the_o very_a same_o day_n wherein_o we_o depart_v from_o newburge_n about_o noon_n we_o come_v to_o the_o ambassador_n who_o entertain_v i_o with_o so_o great_a courtesy_n favour_n and_o love_n as_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o and_o all_o the_o whole_a journey_n have_v no_o less_o care_n of_o i_o than_o if_o i_o have_v be_v his_o brother_n or_o son_n and_o when_o my_o horse_n be_v prick_v in_o the_o foot_n with_o a_o nail_n so_o as_o he_o become_v lame_a he_o give_v i_o a_o strong_a and_o lusty_a amble_a horse_n of_o his_o own_o which_o i_o use_v commodiouslie_o till_o i_o come_v hither_o what_o will_v you_o say_v he_o omit_v no_o part_n which_o can_v be_v look_v for_o of_o a_o most_o friendly_a man_n wherefore_o i_o think_v myself_o very_o much_o bind_v unto_o he_o and_o especial_o because_o i_o perceive_v that_o he_o great_o favour_v you_o and_o our_o common_a weal_n and_o very_o much_o love_v the_o church_n we_o seldom_o depart_v from_o the_o table_n during_o all_o the_o journey_n but_o that_o there_o be_v honourable_a and_o love_a mention_n make_v of_o you_o this_o morning_n we_o be_v one_o sever_v from_o another_o for_o a_o while_n for_o he_o withdraw_v himself_o to_o his_o own_o house_n out_o of_o the_o town_n to_o morrow_n or_o the_o day_n follow_v he_o will_v meet_v with_o i_o at_o the_o court_n which_o be_v at_o s._n germane_a as_o for_o i_o i_o enter_v into_o the_o city_n bountiful_o love_o and_o friendly_o entertain_v by_o the_o king_n treasurer_n in_o his_o own_o house_n for_o among_o other_o faithful_a man_n he_o be_v a_o earnest_a favourer_n of_o the_o gospel_n our_o friend_n pradella_n go_v before_o and_o certify_v the_o prince_n in_o the_o court_n of_o my_o come_n who_o he_o say_v be_v very_o glad_a thereof_o i_o mean_v the_o queen_n mother_n the_o king_n of_o navarre_n the_o prince_n of_o condie_n and_o the_o admiral_n they_o do_v all_o salute_v i_o very_o friendly_a by_o he_o and_o i_o be_o appoint_v by_o they_o that_o i_o shall_v rest_v at_o paris_n all_o this_o after_o noon_n until_o night_n to_o morrow_n at_o seven_o of_o the_o clock_n in_o the_o morning_n i_o shall_v go_v to_o the_o court_n whither_o that_o i_o may_v be_v carry_v the_o more_o easy_o the_o prince_n of_o condie_n have_v send_v i_o his_o mulet_n which_o go_v very_o easy_o he_o send_v also_o unto_o i_o to_o welcome_v i_o both_o his_o physician_n and_o his_o secretary_n this_o day_n they_o have_v begin_v the_o conference_n and_o they_o say_v that_o we_o must_v first_o dispute_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n beza_n confer_v once_o with_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n who_o although_o he_o be_v stout_o against_o our_o opinion_n yet_o do_v he_o by_o express_a word_n forsake_v transubstantiation_n the_o conference_n must_v be_v have_v in_o the_o french_a tongue_n because_o both_o the_o king_n and_o the_o queen_n and_o the_o prince_n will_v be_v present_a and_o hear_v it_o wherefore_o i_o shall_v not_o speak_v among_o they_o but_o shall_v counsel_n assist_v and_o suggest_v such_o thing_n so_o my_o associate_n as_o shall_v be_v think_v good_a i_o shall_v deal_v as_o they_o say_v with_o the_o queen_n who_o be_v say_v to_o persuade_v herself_o of_o many_o thing_n touch_v i_o the_o plague_n begin_v to_o be_v somewhat_o busy_a in_o the_o city_n but_o the_o rumour_n of_o the_o evil_n be_v great_a than_o be_v the_o hurt_n the_o cardinal_n of_o ferrara_n be_v not_o yet_o enter_v into_o the_o city_n all_o the_o faithful_a request_n of_o the_o king_n that_o they_o may_v have_v free_a licence_n grant_v they_o to_o meet_v at_o their_o holy_a assembly_n this_o as_o yet_o they_o have_v not_o obtain_v which_o now_o they_o hope_v they_o shall_v obtain_v albeit_o that_o in_o diverse_a part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n they_o have_v church_n already_o these_o thing_n have_v i_o write_v to_o day_n to_o morrow_n i_o will_v tell_v you_o more_o and_o more_o certain_a news_n when_o i_o shall_v have_v be_v at_o the_o court._n the_o next_o day_n after_o i_o come_v to_o the_o court_n namely_o unto_o s._n german_n where_o of_o our_o brethren_n the_o colocutor_n i_o be_v very_o friendly_a and_o brotherlie_a receive_v poyssi_n the_o conference_n of_o poyssi_n the_o conference_n be_v have_v at_o poyssi_n which_o place_n be_v from_o hence_o a_o little_a french_a mile_n where_o the_o bishop_n also_o do_v
obtain_v it_o two_o 262_o a_o the_o church_n excuse_v for_o that_o of_o simon_n magus_n and_o why_o 2_o 293_o a_o certain_a signify_v thing_n that_o follow_v it_o 4_o 135_o b_o the_o change_n of_o we_o therein_o 4_o 156_o a_o the_o priest_n breathe_v upon_o the_o infant_n thereat_o 4_o 128_o a_o impute_v effectual_a to_o the_o receiver_n thereof_o 4_o 214_o b_o whether_o it_o or_o the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o worthy_a sacrament_n 4_o 185_o a_o how_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v faith_n 4_o 163_o a_o the_o thing_n offer_v therein_o be_v also_o have_v before_o 4_o 113_o b_o what_o analogy_n there_o be_v or_o the_o sign_n &_o thing_n signify_v in_o the_o same_o 4_o 154_o a_o how_o paul_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v in_o say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o send_v to_o minister_v baptism_n the_o same_o be_v a_o part_n of_o his_o apostolical_a commission_n 4_o 44_o b_o whether_o sin_n can_v be_v forgive_v thereby_o 2_o 635_o a_o 108_o ab_fw-la of_o thrice_o dip_v therein_o 4_o 128_o a_o abolish_v out_o of_o the_o church_n 2_o 354a_n 4_o 209_o ab_fw-la impute_v where_o it_o can_v be_v have_v 4_o 208_o a_o what_o analogy_n the_o water_n have_v in_o it_o 4_o 113_o a_o a_o large_a and_o ample_a definition_n thereof_o 4_o 112_o a_o whether_o man_n have_v the_o spirit_n and_o grace_n before_o it_o be_v therefore_o baptize_v in_o vain_a 4_o 137_o a_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n and_o token_n that_o original_a sin_n be_v in_o us._n two_o 214_o b_o how_o christ_n be_v give_v therein_o and_o in_o the_o eucharist_n 4_o 153_o b_o augustine_n error_n touch_v infant_n which_o die_v without_o it_o 3_o 243_o b_o exorcism_n add_v thereto_o ●_o 28_o b_o whether_o the_o infant_n of_o christian_n die_v without_o it_o be_v damn_v 4_o 136_o ab_fw-la 120_o b_o 115_o a_o 2_o 233_o b_o 234_o a_o 5●5_n a_o admit_v by_o augustine_n to_o the_o father_n in_o the_o old_a law_n 4_o 102_o a_o error_n of_o tertullian_n touch_v the_o same_o 3_o 149a_o why_o infant_n die_v without_o it_o be_v think_v to_o be_v damn_v 4_o 121_o b_o 122_o a_o no_o exorcism_n about_o it_o in_o ancient_a time_n 4_o ●3●_n a_o circumcision_n &_o the_o same_o differ_v not_o etc._n etc._n 4_o 104_o a_o by_o it_o we_o be_v visible_o graff_v into_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n 4_o 114_o a_o whether_o the_o outward_a word_n or_o visible_a sign_n thereof_o be_v altogether_o necessary_a to_o regeneration_n 2_o 233_o a_o how_o it_o be_v not_o superfluous_a though_o child_n be_v save_v before_o it_o 4_o 121_o ab_fw-la that_o of_o infant_n be_v no_o new_a thing_n in_o the_o church_n ●_o 114_o b_o 115_o a_o a_o decree_n for_o godfather_n therein_o 4_o 114_o b_o of_o the_o spirit_n &_o of_o martyrdom_n 4_o 136_o a_o of_o they_o that_o refuse_v or_o neglect_v 〈◊〉_d 4_o 1●6_n b_o 137_o a_o reason_n for_o proof_n and_o disproof_n of_o exorcism_n about_o it_o 4_o 133_o ab_fw-la 134ab_n 137_o ab_fw-la ●_o 8_o a_o the_o beginning_n of_o exorcism_n join_v therewith_o 4_o 13●_n b_o of_o the_o baptism_n of_o request_n or_o desire_n 4_o 122_o a_o defer_v till_o the_o end_n of_o life_n 4_o 128_o a_o 108_o a_o whether_o we_o be_v justify_v free_o before_o it_o 3_o 236_o b_o 237_o a_o whether_o the_o order_n thereof_o be_v invert_v in_o baptise_v in_o faith_n 4_o 210_o ab_fw-la in_o what_o respect_n the_o lack_n thereof_o be_v a_o hurt_n to_o salvation_n 2_o 262_o a_o in_o it_o we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o any_o certain_a number_n of_o day_n 4_o 109b_n not_o all_o that_o receive_v it_o not_o do_v perish_v ●_o 114_o a_o a_o change_n in_o the_o form_n thereof_o 4_o 209_o b_o 210_o a_o it_o do_v not_o abolish_v the_o corruption_n of_o nature_n 2_o 243_o b_o the_o roman_a church_n allow_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o churchyard_n for_o the_o bury_n of_o such_o infant_n as_o die_v without_o it_o and_o why_o 2_o 229_o a_o ordain_v for_o infant_n by_o the_o apostolical_a tradition_n 2_o 218_o b_o the_o form_n thereof_o prescribe_v by_o christ_n 4_o 113_o a_o what_o it_o signify_v 4_o 135_o a_o augustine_n attribute_v overmuch_o thereto_o 4_o 132_o b_o 137_o ab_fw-la it_o must_v be_v always_o remember_v 4_o 114b_n the_o use_n thereof_o be_v perpetual_a 4_o 1●8_n a_o circumcision_n and_o it_o compare_v 4_o ●…_n b_o christ_n call_v death_n baptism_n 4_o 114_o a_o whether_o exorcism_n be_v to_o be_v join_v with_o it_o 4_o 132_o b_o baptism_n of_o bell_n 4_o 125_o b_o ¶_o look_n sacrament_n barrenness_n diverse_a cause_n why_o barrenness_n be_v reproachful_a among_o the_o jew_n 2_o 429_o b_o that_o &_o fruitfulness_n depend_v not_o of_o second_o cause_n only_o 2_o 431_o ab_fw-la polygamy_n allow_v of_o some_o as_o a_o remedy_n against_o it_o 2_o 421_o b_o bastard_n what_o child_n be_v common_o call_v and_o count_v a_o bastard_n 476_o b_o why_o spurius_n signify_v such_o a_o one_o be_v write_v with_o sp._n among_o the_o roman_n 2_o 477_o b_o why_o god_n make_v such_o a_o one_o ruler_n over_o his_o people_n since_o it_o be_v not_o for_o a_o bastard_n to_o bear_v office_n in_o the_o jew_n common_a weal_n 2_o 476_o a_o the_o base_a son_n or_o bastard_n of_o augustine_n 4_o 114_o a_o bastard_n why_o bastard_n be_v forbid_v to_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n 2_o 470_o b_o 476_o a_o reckon_v in_o christ_n genealogy_n 2_o 477_o b_o by_o the_o civil_a law_n they_o may_v be_v make_v captain_n over_o ten_o 2_o 478_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v more_o shameful_a for_o woman_n or_o man_n to_o have_v such_o 2_o 490_o a_o 492_o b_o reasins_z of_o augustine_n why_o they_o be_v not_o repute_v in_o the_o place_n of_o child_n 2_o 476_o b_o 477_o a_o child_n beget_v in_o marriage_n make_v between_o two_o within_o the_o degree_n forbid_v be_v such_o 2_o 450_o b_o in_o how_o great_a a_o misery_n touch_v temporal_a thing_n they_o be_v 2_o 476_o b_o what_o the_o canon_n have_v decree_v touch_v they_o 2_o 477_o b_o godly_a education_n may_v happen_v unto_o they_o example_n of_o augustine_n base_a son_n adeodatus_n 2_o 238_o a_o what_o harm_n be_v bring_v unto_o they_o by_o they_o that_o beget_v they_o 2_o 477_o b_o they_o have_v no_o place_n in_o the_o commonweal_n of_o israel_n 2_o 476a_o how_o favourable_o the_o father_n speak_v in_o their_o behalf_n 2_o 477_o b_o they_o may_v not_o inherit_v 2_o 476_o b_o 477_o a_o they_o common_o prove_v worse_o than_o other_o child_n 2_o 477_o ab_fw-la whether_o they_o be_v to_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o ministry_n two_o 477_o b_o 478_o a_o bawdry_n bawdry_n condemn_v to_o be_v as_o foul_a a_o vice_n as_o adultery_n 2_o 495_o b_o 496_o a_o the_o pope_n maintainer_n thereof_o &_o what_o the_o civil_a law_n decree_v touch_v bawdry_n 2_o 472_o b_o in_o what_o case_n the_o husband_n incur_v the_o crime_n thereof_o 2_o 485_o ab_fw-la 495_o b_o be._n beast_n beast_n have_v not_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n and_o yet_o they_o do_v many_o voluntary_a action_n two_o 290_o a_o they_o be_v not_o predestinate_a 3_o 8_o b_o they_o be_v not_o without_o a_o appetite_n whereby_o they_o be_v move_v 2_o 290_o a_o they_o be_v make_v for_o the_o afflict_a of_o man_n 1_o 124._o a_o analogy_n between_o they_o and_o man_n 3_o 368_o a_o a_o double_a profit_n gather_v by_o the_o destruction_n of_o man_n by_o beast_n 1_n 124_o b._n look_v creature_n beauty_n beauty_n will_v disclose_v and_o show_v itself_o even_o in_o very_a rag_n 1_n 163_o a._n whether_o be_v natural_a it_o may_v be_v accuse_v of_o sin_n 2_o 514_o b_o what_o be_v the_o part_n of_o a_o damsel_n endue_v therewith_o 2_o 516_o b_o a_o definition_n thereof_o and_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o evil_a thing_n 2_o 481_o ab_fw-la the_o force_n ●…reof_o and_o how_o it_o wound_v the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o just_a 2_o 441_o b_o 442_o a_o natural_a and_o artificial_a and_o whether_o the_o last_o be_v to_o be_v count_v sin_n 2_o 509_o b_o it_o be_v not_o comely_a for_o man_n to_o be_v careful_a thereof_o 2_o 508_o b_o 509_o a_o require_v to_o felicity_n and_o what_o aristotle_n mean_v by_o beauty_n in_o that_o place_n 1_n 147_o b_o of_o the_o body_n be_v a_o certain_a image_n of_o the_o mind_n 1_n 148_o a_o against_o that_o which_o be_v counterfeit_v procure_v by_o paint_v etc._n etc._n 2_o 508_o ab_fw-la require_v in_o the_o priest_n that_o shall_v serve_v in_o the_o sanctuary_n 1_n 149_o a_o of_o saul_n and_o david_n and_o that_o beauty_n make_v man_n belove_v 1_n 147_o b_o 148_o a_o it_o be_v a_o quality_n and_o whereof_o it_o rise_v 1_n 135_o b_o beauty_n and_o stature_n do_v nothing_o further_o unto_o salvation_n 1_n 131_o a_o belief_n how_o the_o article_n of_o the_o
deserve_v the_o title_n 4_o 70_o b_o 71_o a_o cause_n the_o difference_n between_o cause_n &_o mean_n 3_o 52_o b_o whether_o one_o and_o the_o same_o cause_n may_v produce_v contrary_a effect_n 3_o 289_o b_o that_o which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o a_o cause_n may_v also_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o a_o effect_n as_o how_o 1_n 178_o a_o 3_o 14_o b_o a_o accidental_a cause_n can_v be_v no_o cause_n say_v the_o philosopher_n 1_o 173_o a_o evil_a have_v not_o a_o efficient_a but_o a_o deficient_a cause_n 1_n 184_o a_o of_o a_o cause_n which_o so_o work_v that_o it_o be_v also_o wrought_v and_o not_o wrought_v of_o another_o 3_o 39_o b_o that_o which_o be_v the_o latter_a can_v be_v the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o that_o which_o go_v before_o 3_o 16_o b_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n may_v be_v both_o the_o efficient_a cause_n and_o the_o effect_n and_o how_o 2_o 600_o a_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o a_o sound_n and_o constant_a thing_n to_o assign_v a_o mutable_a cause_n as_o how_o 1_o 161_o b_o how_o the_o instrument_n be_v affect_v to_o the_o efficient_a cause_n 1_o 164_o a_o what_o be_v the_o deficient_a cause_n of_o evil_a action_n 1_n 184_o a_o god_n be_v not_o the_o proper_a cause_n but_o the_o remove_n or_o prohibit_v cause_n of_o sin_n and_o how_o 1_n 191a_n how_o god_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o deficient_a cause_n of_o sin_n 1_n 187_o a_o a_o objection_n that_o if_o god_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o sin_n than_o he_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o thing_n 1_n 198_o a_o the_o high_a cause_n of_o cause_n be_v god_n will_n 3_o 15_o a_o cause_n the_o conjunction_n of_o cause_n and_o effect_n be_v hard_o to_o change_v 4_o 330_o ab_fw-la efficient_a work_v upon_o they_o to_o covet_v to_o bring_v forth_o effect_n like_o themselves_o in_o nature_n as_o how_o 1_o 176_o b_o noble_a may_v sometime_o bring_v forth_o vile_a effect_n as_o how_o 1_n 156_o b_o of_o natural_a cause_n much_o speak_v by_o way_n of_o assertion_n and_o confutation_n 1_n 79_o ab_fw-la how_o they_o be_v indefinite_a or_o not_o limit_v 1_o 175_o a_o between_o they_o and_o effect_n there_o be_v a_o circuit_n and_o how_o 2_o 578_o a_o all_o do_v not_o necessary_o bring_v forth_o their_o effect_n 3_o 40_o b_o some_z be_v necessary_a and_o some_o not_o necessary_a &_o what_o they_o be_v both_o 1_n 81_o b_o a_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o occasion_n 2_o 509_o b_o 510_o a_o in_o what_o respect_n there_o be_v no_o necessary_a power_n of_o work_v in_o they_o 1_n 174_o a_o god_n can_v let_v they_o be_v they_o never_o so_o certain_a and_o necessary_a and_o how_o 1_n 82_o b_o we_o must_v not_o depend_v whole_o upon_o second_o cause_n 3_o 258_o b_o they_o do_v oftentimes_o change_v themselves_o in_o work_v 1_n 173_o b_o they_o be_v instrument_n of_o god_n providence_n 1_n 173_o ab_fw-la of_o god_n sentence_n according_a to_o they_o 1_n 110_o a_o though_o somewhat_o forceable_a of_o themselves_o yet_o unable_a to_o bring_v any_o thing_n to_o pass_v without_o god_n providence_n procure_v 1_n 170_o a_o cause_n of_o effect_n know_v unto_o spirit_n and_o how_o 1_n 82b_n the_o cause_n of_o honour_n both_o formal_a efficient_a material_a and_o final_a 1_n 141_o b_o three_o kind_n of_o cause_n deliberative_a demonstrative_a and_o judicial_a and_o their_o time_n 4_o 255_o a_o ce._n ceremony_n three_o thing_n in_o every_o ceremony_n of_o the_o old_a law_n 2_o 580_o a_o of_o the_o ceremony_n of_o wash_v the_o foot_n 4_o 211_o ab_fw-la ceremony_n ceremony_n be_v accident_n of_o the_o law_n 2_o 577_o a_o how_o the_o prophet_n mean_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v transfer_v to_o the_o gentile_n 2_o 579_o a_o the_o law_n itself_o will_v have_v they_o abolish_v 2_o 578_o b_o with_o what_o charge_n god_n give_v they_o 2_o 579_o b_o whether_o they_o be_v utter_o unknown_a to_o the_o common_a people_n 3_o 310_o a_o 4_o 105_o b_o 106_o ab_fw-la some_o thing_n in_o they_o firm_a and_o perpetual_a 2_o 577a_o b_o 375b_n why_o god_n give_v they_o which_o shall_v afterward_o be_v abolish_v 2_o 579_o b_o 1_o 173_o b_o 174_o a_o whereby_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v that_o god_n will_v not_o have_v they_o long_o observe_v 2_o 577_o b_o at_o what_o time_n they_o be_v not_o use_v of_o the_o jew_n 2_o 577_o a_o god_n himself_o abolish_v they_o 2_o 577_o a_o only_o one_o thing_n pertain_v to_o they_o command_v in_o the_o table_n of_o the_o law_n 2_o 350_o b_o in_o what_o peculiar_a place_n they_o be_v exercise_v 2_o 577_o b_o it_o be_v no_o great_a matter_n whether_o they_o be_v use_v all_o alike_o in_o all_o place_n of_o a_o kingdom_n 2_o 324_o b_o which_o may_v be_v change_v for_o edification_n sake_n 2_o 324b_n the_o papist_n bring_v in_o paul_n example_n to_o approve_v the_o use_n of_o they_o 2_o 320a_o the_o father_n in_o the_o law_n be_v bind_v to_o more_o than_o we_o 2_o 593_o b_o in_o what_o respect_n they_o be_v count_v detestable_a before_o god_n 1_o two_o b_o of_o their_o use_n and_o how_o long_o they_o shall_v last_v 1_o 9_o b_o how_o long_o they_o remain_v after_o christ_n ascension_n 2_o 320_o b_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o holy_a man_n in_o the_o corrupt_a church_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o communicate_v with_o they_o 2_o 321_o b_o the_o nicodemit_v compare_v they_o with_o the_o invention_n of_o man_n and_o why_o 2_o 320_o b_o whether_o the_o jew_n understand_v the_o promise_n which_o be_v seal_v by_o they_o 4_o 105_o ab_fw-la whether_o justification_n be_v deny_v to_o be_v only_o as_o touch_v they_o 3_o 10●ab_v 10●ab_fw-mi 105a_fw-la the_o time_n when_o they_o have_v their_o beginning_n 2_o 579_o b_o 580a_o why_o they_o be_v institute_v 4_o 140_o a_o john_n baptist_n show_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v abolish_v 2_o 579_o a_o caution_n touch_v they_o in_o the_o church_n 4_o 42_o b_o 43_o ab_fw-la diverse_a papistical_a 4_o 70_o ab_fw-la burden_n in_o the_o church_n complain_v of_o 4_o 77_o b_o in_o what_o respect_n paul_n be_v content_a that_o they_o may_v be_v use_v 2_o 320_o ab_fw-la certainty_n of_o the_o certainty_n of_o hope_n much_o speak_v too_o and_o fro_o 3_o 83_o b_o 84_o ab_fw-la the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n teach_v the_o certainty_n of_o salvation_n 3_o ●5_n a_o ch._n chance_n how_o thing_n depend_v of_o chance_n do_v fall_v out_o to_o be_v necessary_a prove_v 1_o 175ab_n even_o the_o thing_n that_o to_o be_v so_o 〈◊〉_d to_o come_v by_o chance_n be_v govern_v by_o god_n providence_n prove_v 1_n 17●_n b_o 18●_n b_o 173_o a_o ●…9_n a_o fortune_n and_o chance_n be_v refer_v unto_o we_o not_o unto_o god_n example_n 3_o 3●_n ab_fw-la why_o any_o thing_n shall_v be_v say_v to_o come_v by_o chance_n see_v god_n have_v determine_v of_o the_o one_o part_n &_o so_o make_v it_o a_o thing_n of_o necessity_n 1_n 174_o b_o a_o cause_n come_v by_o chance_n can_v be_v no_o cause_n say_v the_o philosopher_n 1_n 173_o a_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n that_o come_v by_o chance_n what_o it_o be_v 1_n 34_o a_o what_o thing_n be_v say_v to_o be_v do_v by_o chance_n and_o not_o of_o necessity_n and_o contrariwise_o 1_n 169a_o 174_o a_o whether_o god_n providence_n take_v away_o chance_n and_o fortune_n 1_n 168_o b_o 174_o a_o why_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n some_o be_v necessary_a and_o some_o casual_a or_o depend_v upon_o chance_n 1_n 174_o b_o what_o the_o grecian_n call_v a_o thing_n come_v by_o chance_n and_o how_o many_o sort_n of_o they_o there_o be_v 1_o 169_o b_o the_o peripatetik_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o many_o thing_n come_v by_o chance_n 1_n 172_o a_o what_o kind_n of_o game_n depend_v thereupon_o 2_o 525_o ab_fw-la how_o thing_n be_v say_v to_o be_v by_o chance_n in_o respect_n of_o god_n and_o us._n 1_o 169_o ab_fw-la the_o philosopher_n assign_v two_o ground_n or_o beginning_n of_o chance_n 1_n 169_o ab_fw-la change_n whether_o there_o be_v change_n in_o god_n 3_o 302_o a_o 10_o a_o 37_o b_o in_o what_o respect_n there_o be_v and_o be_v not_o 1_n 208_o a_o whether_o it_o be_v in_o the_o thing_n itself_o or_o in_o he_o 1_n 207_o a_o none_o in_o he_o though_o in_o man_n reason_n there_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v 1_n 109_o b_o 3_o 49_o ab_fw-la all_o man_n but_o not_o after_o one_o manner_n confess_v it_o 1_n 208_o b_o whether_o god_n do_v change_v his_o purpose_n when_o man_n change_v 1_n 207_o b_o the_o change_n of_o man_n come_v not_o of_o himself_o but_o of_o god_n 1_o 207_o b_o of_o the_o change_n of_o all_o thing_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 3_o 393_o a_o ¶_o look_v world_n charity_n a_o definition_n of_o charity_n 2_o 558_o